Digitized by the Internet Archive in 2010 http://www.archive.org/details/harvardclassics01elio ^r::-E^V^ Printing Press at which F?^anklin worked in Watt's Printing-Office, London, in 1725- —See p. 46 THE HARVARD CLASSICS EDITED BY CHARLES W ELIOT LL D THE AUTOBIOGRAPHY OF BEXJAMIN FRANKLIN THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN FRUITS OF SOLITUDE WILLIAM PENN WITH INTRODUCTIONS AND NOTES VOLUME 1 P F COLLIER & SON COMPANY NEW YORK Copyright, 1909 By p. F. Collier & Son manufactured in u. s. a. CONTENTS PAGE Benjamin Franklin, His Autobiography .... 5 The Journal of John Woolman Chapter I I77 Chapter II 187 Chapter III i95 Chapter IV 208 Chapter V 225 Chapter VI 235 Chapter VII 248 Chapter VIII 260 Chapter IX 282 Chapter X 295 Chapter XI Z^'^ Chapter XII 316 The Death of John Woolman 327 Some Fruits of Solitude, in Reflections and Maxims Part I. William Penn 329 More Fruits of Solitude, Being the Second Part of Reflections and Maxims 385 HC— Vol. 1 Planned and Designea at The Collier Press ' By William Patten INTRODUCTORY NOTE Benjamin Franklin was horn in Milk Street, Boston, on January 6 {January 17, new style), 1706. His father, Josiah Franklin, was a tallow chandler who married twice, and of his seventeen children Benjamin was the youngest son. His school- ing ended at ten, and at twelve he was bound apprentice to hi^- brother James, a printer, who published the "New England Cour^ ant.'' To this journal he became a contributor, and later was for a time its nominal editor. But the brothers quarreled, and Ben- jamin ran away, going first to New York, and thence to Philadel- phia, where he arrived in October, 1723. He soon obtained work as a printer, but after a few months he zvas induced by Governor Keith to go to London, where, finding Keith's promises empty, he again worked as a compositor till he was brought back to Phila- delphia by a merchant named Denman, who gave him a position in his business. On Denman's death he returned to his former trade, and shortly set up a printing house of his own from which he published "The Pennsylvania Gazette," to which he contrib- uted many essays, and which he made a medium for agitating a variety of local reforms. In 1732 he began to issue his famous "Poor Richard's Almanac" for the enrichment of which he bor- rowed or composed those pithy utterances of worldly wisdom which are the basis of a large part of his popular reputation. In 1758, the year in which he ceased writing for the Alm,anac, he printed in it "Father Abraham's Sermon," now regarded as the most famous piece of literature produced in Colonial America. Meantime Franklin was concerning himself more and more with public affairs. He set forth a scheme for an Academy, 'which was taken up later and finally developed into the Uni- versity of Pennsylvania; and he founded an "American Philo- sophical Society" for the purpose of enabling scientific men to communicate their discoveries to one another. He himself had already begun his electrical researches, which, imth other scien- tific inquiries, he carried on in the intervals of money-making and politics to the end of his life. In 1748 he sold' his business in order to get leisure for study, having now acquired compara- tive wealth; and in a few years he had made discove-ries that gave hhn a reputation with the learned throughout Europe. In 3 ^ O stamp agent in America. Even his effect- ive work in helping to obtain the repeal of the act left him still a suspect; but he continued his efforts to present the case for the Colonies as the troubles thickened toward the crisis of the Revolution. In 1767 he crossed to France, where he was re- ceived with honor; but before his return home in 1775 he lost his position as postmaster through his share in divulging to Massa- chusetts the famous letter of Hutchinson and Oliver. On his ar- rival in Philadelphia he was chosen a member of the Continental Congress, and in 1777 he was despatched to France as commissioner for the United States. Here he remained till 1785, the favorite of French society ; and with such success did he conduct the affairs of his country that when he finally returned he received a place only second to that of Washington as the champion of American independence. He died on April 17, 1790. The first five chapters of the Autobiography were composed in England in 1771, continued in 1784-5, and again in 1788, at which date he brought it down to 1757. After a most extraordinary series of adventures, the original form of the manuscript was finally printed by Mr. John Bigelow, and is here reproduced in recognition of its value as a picture of one of the most notable personalities of Colonial times, and of its acknowledged rank oj? one of the great autobiographies of the world. BENJAMIN FRANKLIN HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 1706-1757 TwYFORD, at the Bishop of St. Asuph^s,^ 1771. DEAR SON : I have ever had pleasure in obtainmg any little anecdotes of my ancestors. You may remember the inquiries I made among the remains of my rela- tions when you were with me in England, and the journey I undertook for that purpose. Imagining it may be equally agreeable to* you to know the circumstances of my life, many of which you are yet unacquainted with, and expecting the enjoyment of a week's uninterrupted leisure in my present country retirement, I sit down to write them for you. To which I have besides some other inducements. Having emerged from the poverty and obscurity in which I was born and bred;, to a state of afHuence and some degree of reputation in the world, and having gone so far through life with a considerable share of felicity, the conducing means I made use of, which with the blessing of God so well suc- ceeded, my posterity may like to know, as they may find some of them suitable to their own situations, and therefore fit to be imitated. That felicity, when I reflected on it, has indnced me some- times to say, that were it offered to my choice, I should have no objection to a repetition of the same life from its beginning, only asking the advantages authors have in a second edition to correct some faults of the first. So I might, ^ The country-seat of Bishop Shipley, the good bishop, as Dr. Franklin used to style him. — B. ' After the words " agreeable to " the words " some of " Were interlined aad afterward effaced. — B. 6 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN besides correcting the faults, change some sinister accidents and events of it for others more favorable. But though this were denied, I should still accept the offer. Since such a repetition is not to be expected^ the next thing most like living one's life over again seems to be a recollection of that life, and to make that recollection as durable as possible by putting it down in writing. Hereby, too, I shall indulge the inclination so natural in old m.en, to be talking of themselves and their own past ac- tions ; and I shall indulge it without being tiresome to others, who, through respect to age, might conceive themselves obliged to give me a hearing, since this may be read or not as any one pleases. And, lastly (I may as well confess it, since my denial of it will be believed by nobody), perhaps I shall a good deal gratify my own vanity. Indeed, I scarce ever heard or saw the introductory words, '' Without vanity I may say/' &c., but some vain thing immediately followed. Most people dislike vanity in others, whatever share they have of it themselves; but I give it fair quarter wherever I meet with it, being persuaded that it is often productive of good to the possessor, and to others that are within his sphere of action; and therefore, in many cases, it would not be altogether absurd if a man were to thank God for his vanity among the other comforts of life. And now I speak of thanking God, I desire with all humil- ity to acknowledge that I owe the mentioned happiness of my past life to His kind providence, which lead me to the means I used and gave them success. My belief of this induces me to hope, though I must not presume, that the sam.e goodness will still be exercised toward me, in con- tinuing that happiness, or enabling me to bear a fatal reverse, which I may experience as others have done: the complexion of my future fortune being knov/n to Him only in whose power it is to bless to us even our afflictions. The notes one of my uncles (who had the same kind of curiosity in collecting family anecdotes) once put into my hands, furnished me with several particulars relating to our ancestors. From these notes I learned that the family had lived in the same village, Ecton, in Northamptonshire, for HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 7 three hundred years, and how much longer he knew not (perhaps from the time when the name of Franklin, that be- fore was the name of an order of people, was assumed by them as a surname when others took surnames all over the kingdom), on a freehold of about thirty acres, aided by the smith's business, which had continued in the family till his time, the eldest son being always bred to that business; a custom which he and my father followed as to their eldest sons. When I searched the registers at Ecton, I found an account of their births, marriages and burials from the year 1555 only, there being no registers kept in that parish at any time preceding. By that register I perceived that I was the youngest son of the youngest son for five generations back. My grandfather Thomas, who was born in 1598, lived at Ecton till he grew too old to follow business longer, when he went to live with his son John, a dyer at Banbury, in Oxfordshire, with whom my father served an apprentice- ship. There my grandfather died and lies buried. We saw his gravestone in 1758. His eldest son Thomas lived in the house at Ecton, and left it with the land to his only child, a daughter, who, with her husband, one Fisher, of Welling- borough, sold it to Mr. Isted, now lord of the manor there. My grandfather had four sons that grew up, viz. : Thomas, John, Benjamin and Josiah. I will give you what account I can of them, at this distance from my papers, and if these are not lost in my absence, you will among them find many more particulars. Thomas was bred a smith under his father; but, being ingenious, and encouraged in learning (as all my brothers were) by an Esquire Palmer, then the principal gentleman in that parish, he qualified himself for the business of scrivener; became a considerable man in the county ; was a chief mover of all public-spirited undertakings for the county or town of Northampton, and his own village, of which many instances were related of him; and much taken notice of and patron- ized by the then Lord Halifax. He died in 1702, January 6, old style, just four years to a day before I was born. The account we received of his life and character from some old people at Ecton, I remember, struck you as something extraordinary, from its similarity to what you knew of minCo 8 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN " Had he died on the same day," you said, " one might have supposed a transmigration." John was bred a dyer, I believe of woolens. Benjamin was bred a silk dyer, serving an apprenticeship at London. He was an ingenious man. I remember him well, for when I was a boy he came over to my father in Boston, and lived in the house with us some years. He lived to a great age. His grandson, Samuel Franklin, now lives in Boston. He left behind him two quarto volumes, MS., of his own poetry, consisting of little occasional pieces addressed to his friends and relations, of which the following, sent to me, is a speci- men.^ He had formed a short-hand of his own, which he taught me, but, never practising it, I have now forgot it. I was named after this uncle, there being a particular affect tion between him and my father. He was very pious, a great attender of sermons of the best preachers, which he took down in his short-hand, and had with him many volumes of them. He was also much of a politician ; too much, perhaps, for his station. There fell lately into my hands, in London, a collection he had made of all the principal pamphlets, relating to public affairs, from 1641 to 1717; many of the volumes are wanting as appears by the numbering, but there still remain eight volumes in folio, and twenty- four in quarto and in octavo. A dealer in old books met with them, and knowing me by my sometimes buy- ing of him, he brought them to me. It seems my uncle must have left them here, when he went to America, which was about fifty years since. There are many of his notes in the margins. This obscure family of ours was early in the Reformation, and continued Protestants through the reign of Queen Mary, when they were sometimes in danger of trouble on account of their zeal against popery. They had got an English Bible, and to conceal and secure it, it was fastened open with tapes under and within the cover of a joint-stool. When my great-great-grandfather read It to his family, he turned up the joint-stool upon his knees, turning over the leaves then ^ Here follow in the margin the words, in brackets, "here insert it," but the poetry is not given. Mr. Sparks informs us (Life of Franklin, p. 6) that these volumes had been preserved, and were in possession of MtS4 Emmons, of Boston> greatrgranddaughter of their author. HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 9 under the tapes. One of the children stood at the door to give notice if he saw the apparitor coming, who was an officer of the spiritual court. In that case the stool was turned down again upon its feet, when the Bible remained concealed under it as before. This anecdote I had from my uncle Benjamin. The family continued all of the Church of Eng- land till about the end of Charles the Second's reign, when some of the ministers that had been outed for non- conformity holding conventicles in Northamptonshire, Ben- jamin and Josiah adhered to them, and so continued all their lives : the rest of the family remained with the Episco- pal Church. Josiah, my father, married young, and carried his wife with three children into New England, about 1682. The conventicles having been forbidden by law, and frequently disturbed, induced some considerable men of his acquaintance to remove to that country, and he was prevailed with to ac- company them thither, where they expected to enjoy their mode of religion with freedom. By the same wife he had four children more born there, and by a second wife ten more, in all seventeen ; of which I remember thirteen sitting at one time at his table, who all grew up to be men and women, and married ; I was the youngest son, and the young- est child but two, and was born in Boston, New Eng- land. My mother, the second wife, was Abiah Folger, daughter of Peter Folger, one of the first settlers of New England, of whom honorable mention is made by Cotton Mather, in his church history of that country, entitled Magnalia Christi Americana;, as '"o godly, learned English- man, " if I remember the words rightly, I have heard that he wrote sundry small occasional pieces, but - only pne of them was printed, which I saw now many years since. It was written in 1675, in the home-spun verse of that time and people, and addressed to those then concerned in the government there. It was in f a-vor of liberty of conscience, and in behalf of the Baptists, Quakers, and other sectaries that had been under persecution, ascribing the Indian wars, and other distresses that had befallen the country, to that perse- cution, as so many judgments of God to punish so heinous an offense, and exhorting a repeal of those uncharitable laws. 10 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN The whole appeared to me as written with a good deal o£ decent plainness and manly freedom. The six concluding lines I remember, though I have forgotten the two first of the stanza; but the purport of them was, that his censures proceeded from good-will, and, therefore, he would be known to be the author. " Because to be a libeller (says lie) I hate it with my heart; From Sherburne town, where now I dwell My name I do put here ; Without offense your real friend. It is Peter Folgier." My elder brothers were all put apprentices to different trades. I was put to the grammar-school at eight 5^ears of age, my father intending to devote me, as the tithe of his sons, to the service of the Church. My early readiness in learning to read (which must have been very early, as I do not remember when I could not read), and the opinion of all his friends, that I should certainly make a good scholar, encour- aged him in this purpose of his^ My uncle Benjamin, too, approved of it, and proposed to give me all his short-hand volumes of sermons, I suppose as a stock to set up with, if I would learn his character. I continued, however, at the grammar-school not quite one year, though in that time I had risen gradually from the middle of the class of that year to be the head of it, and farther was rem.oved into the next class above it, in order to go with that into the third at the end of the year. But my father, in the meantime, from a view of the expense of a college education, which having so large a family he could not well afford, and the mean living many so educated were afterwards able to obtain — reasons that he gave to his friends in my hearing— altered his first intention, took me from the grammar-school, and sent me to a school for writing and arithmetic^ kept by a then famous man, Mr. George Brownell, very successful in his profession generally, and that by mild, encouraging miethods. Under him I acquired fair writing pretty soon, but I failed in the arithmetic, and made no progress in it. At ten years old I was taken home to assist my father in his business, which was that of a tallow-chandler and sope-boiler ; a business he HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 11 was not bred to, but had assumed on his arrival in New England, and on finding his dying trade would not main- tain his family, being in little request. Accordingly, I was employed in cutting wick for the candles, filling the dipping mold and the molds for cast candles, attending the shop, going of errands, etc. I disliked the trade, and had a strong inclination for the sea, but my father declared against it; however, living near the water, I was much in and about it, learnt early to swim well, and to manage boats; and when in a boat or canoe with other boys, I was commonly allowed to govern, especially in any case of difficulty; and upon other occasions I was generally a leader among the boys, and sometimes led them into scrapes, of which I will mention one instance, as it shows an early projecting public spirit, tho' not then justly conducted. There was a salt-marsh that bounded part of the mill-pond, on the edge of which, at high water, we used to stand to fish for minnows. By much trampling, we had made it a mere quagmire. My proposal was to build a wharff there fi.t for us to stand upon, and I showed my comrades a large heap of stones, which were intended for a new house near the marsh, and which v/ould very well suit our purpose. Accordingly, in the evening, v/hen the workmen were gone, I assembled a number of my play-fellows, and working with them diligently like so many emmets, sometimes two of three to a stone, we brought them all away and built our little wharfi. The next morning the workmen were sur- prised at missing the stones, which were found in our wharff. Inquiry was made after the removers; we were discovered and complained of; several of us were corrected by our fathers; and though I pleaded the usefulness of the work, mine convinced me that nothing was useful which was not honest. I think you may like to know som.ething of his person and character. He had an excellent constitution of body, was of middle stature, but v/ell set, and very strong; he was ingenious, could draw prettily, was skilled a little in music, and had a clear pleasing voice, so that when he played psalm tunes on his violin and sung withal, as he sometimes 12 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN did m an evening after the business of the day was over, it was extremely agreeable to hear. He had a mechanical genius too, and, on occasion, was very handy in the use of other tradesmen's tools; but his great excellence lay in a sound understanding and solid judgment in prudential mat- ters, both in private and publick affairs. In the latter, indeed, he was never employed, the numerous family he had to educate and the straitness of his circumstances keeping him close to his trade; but I remember well his being fre- quently visited by leading people, who consulted him for his opinion in affairs of the town or of the church he belonged to, and showed a good deal of respect for his judgment and advice: he was also much consulted by private persons about their affairs [when any difficulty occurred, and frequently chosen an arbitrator between contending parties. At his table he liked to have, as often as he could, some sensible friend or neighbor to converse with, and always took care to start some ingenious or useful topic for dis- course, which might tend to improve the minds of his children. By this means he turned our attention to what was good, just, and prudent in the conduct of life; and little or no notice was ever taken of what related to the victuals on the table, whether it was well or ill dressed, in or out of season, of good or bad flavor, preferable or inferior to this or that other thing of the kind, so that I was bro't lUp in such a perfect inattention to those matters as to be quite indifferent what kind of food was set before me, and so unobservant of it, that to this day if I am asked I can scarce tell a few hours after dinner what I dined upon. This has been a convenience to me in travelling, where my companions have been sometimes very unhappy for want of a suitable gratification of their more delicate, because better instructed, tastes and appetites. My mother had likewise an excellent constitution: she suckled all her ten children. I never knew either my father or mother to have any sickness but that of which they dy'd, he at 89, and she at 85 years of age. They lie buried together at Boston, where I some years since placed a marble over their gr^ive, with this inscription: HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 13 JosiAH Franklin, and Abiah his wife, lie here interred. \ They lived lovingly together in wedlock fifty-five years. Without an estate, or any gainful emploj^nenfj By constant labor and industry, with God's blessing, They maintained a large family comfortably, and brought up thirteen children and seven grandchildren reputably. From this instance, reader, Be encouraged to diligence in thy calling, And distrust not Providence. He was a pious and prudent man; She, a discreet and virtuous woman. Their youngest son. In filial regard to their memory. Places this stone* J. F. born 1655, died 1744, -^tat 89. A. F. born 1667, died 1752, 85. By my rambling digressions I perceive myself to be grown old. I us'd to write more methodically. But one does not dress for private company as for a publick ball. 'Tis per* haps only negligence. To return: I continued thus employed in my father's business for two years, that is, till I was twelve years old; and my brother John, who was bred to that business, having left my father, married, and set up for himself at Rhode Island, there was all appearance that I was destined to supply his place, and become a tallow-chandler. But my dislike to the trade continuing, my father was under apprehensions that if he did not find one for me more agreeable, I should break away and get to sea, as his son Josiah had done, to ' his great vexation. He therefore sometimes took me to walk with him, and see joiners, bricklayers, turners, braziers, etc., at their work, that he might observe my inclination, and endeavor to fix it on some trade or other on land. It has ever since been a pleasure to m.e to see good workmen handle their tools; and it has been useful to me, having learnt so much by it as to be able to do little jobs myseli 14 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN ' in my house when a workman could not readily be got, and to construct little machines for my experiments, while the intention of making the experiment was fresh and warm in my mind. My father at last fixed upon the cutler's trade, and my uncle Benjamin's son Samuel, who was bred to that business in London, being about that time established in Boston, I was sent to be with him some time on liking. But his expectations of a fee with me displeasing my father, I was taken home again. From a child I was fond of reading, and all the little money that came into my hands was ever laid out in books. Pleased with the Pilgrim's Progress, my first collection was of John Bunyan's works in separate little volumes. I after- ward sold them to enable me to buy R. Burton's Historical Collections; they were small chapmen's books, and cheap, 40 or 50 in all. My father's little library consisted chiefly of books in polemic divinity, most of which I read, and have since often regretted that, at a time when I had such a thirst for knowledge, more proper books had not fallen in my way, since it was now resolved I should not be a clergyman. Plutarch's Lives there was in which I read abundantly, and I still think that time spent to great advan- tage. There was also a book of De Foe's, called an Essay on Projects, and another of Dr. Mather's, called Essays to do Good, which perhaps gave me a turn of thinking that had an influence on some of the principal future events of my life. This bookish inclination at length determined my father to make me a printer, though he had already one son (James) of that profession. In 1717 my brother James returned from England with a press and letters to set up his business in Boston. I liked it m.uch better than that of my father, but still had a hankering for the sea. To prevent the apprehended effect of such an inclination, my father was impatient to have me bound to my brother. I stood out some time, but at last was persuaded, and signed the indentures when I was yet but twelve years old. I was to serve as an apprentice till I was twenty-one years of age, only I was to be allmved journeyman's wages during the last year. In a little trnie I mad^ great proficiency in the HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 15 business, and became a useftil hand to my brother. I now had access to better books. An acquaintance with the apprentices of booksellers enabled me sometimes to borrow a small one, which I was careful to return soon and clean. Often i sat up in my room reading the greatest part of the night, when the book v/as borrowed irt the evening and to be returned early in the morning, lest it should be missed or wanted. And after some time an ingenious tradesman,. Mr. Matthew Adams, who had a pretty collection of books, and who fre- quented our printing-house, took notice of me, invited me to his library, and very kindly lent me such books as I chose to read. I now took a fancy to poetry, and m.ade some little pieces; m.y brother, thinking it might turn to account, encouraged me, and put me on composing occasional bal- lads. One was called The Lighthouse Tragedy, and con- tained an account of the drowning of Captain Worthilake, with his two daughters: the other was a sailor's song, on the taking of Teach (or Blackbeard) the pirate. They were wretched stuff, in the Grub-street-ballad style; and when they were printed he sent m.e about the town to sell them. The first sold wonderfully, the event being recent, having made a great noise. This flattered my vanity ; but m.y father discouraged me by ridiculing my perform.ances, and telling me verse-makers were generally beggars. So I escaped being a poet, most probably a very bad one; but as prose writing had been of great use to me in the course of my life, and was a principal means of my advancement, I shall tell you how, in such a situation, I acquired what little ability I have in that way. There was another bookish lad in the town, John Collins by name, with whom I was intimately acquainted. We sometimes disputed, and very fond we were of argument, and very desirous of confuting one another, which disputa- tious turn, by the way, is apt to become a very bad habit, making people often extremely disagreeable in company by the contradiction that is necessary to bring it into practice; and thence, besides souring and spoiling the conversation, is productive of disgusts and, perhaps enmities where you may have occasion for friendship. I had caught it by read- 16 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN ing my father's books of dispute about religion. Persons of good sense^ I have since observed, seldom fall into it, except lawyers, university men, and men of all sorts thac have been bred at Edinborough. A question was once, somehow or other, started between Collins and me, of the propriety of educating the female sex in learning, and their abilities for study. He was of opinion that it was improper, and that they were naturally unequal to it. I took the contrary side^ perhaps a little for dispute's sake. He was naturally more eloquent, had a ready plenty of words; and sometimes, as I thought, bore me down more by his fluency than by the strength of his reasons. As we parted without settling the point, and were not to see one another again for some time, I sat down to put my arguments in writing, which I copied fair and sent to him. He answered, and I replied. Three or four letters of a side had passed, when my father happened to find my papers and read them. Without entering into the discussion, he took occasion to talk to me about the manner of my writing ; observed that, though I had the advantage of my antagonist in correct spelling and pointing (which I ow'd to the printing-house), I fell far short in elegance of expression, in method and in perspicuity, of which he convinced me by several instances. I saw the justice of his remark, and thence grew more attentive to the manner in writing, and determined to endeavor at improvement. About this time I met with an odd volume of the Spectator. It was the third. I had never before seen any of them. I bought it, read it over and over, and was much delighted with it. I thought the writing excellent, and wished, if possible, to imitate it. With this view I took some of the papers, and, making short hints of the sentiment in each sentence, laid them by a few days, and then, without looking at the book, tr/d to compleat the papers again, by express- ing each hinted sentiment at length, and as fully as it had been expressed before, in any suitable words that should come to hand. Then I compared my Spectator with the original, discovered some of my faults, and corrected them. But I found I wanted a stock of words, or a readiness in recollecting and using them, which I thought I should have HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 17 acquired before that time if I had gone on making verses; since the continual occasion for words of the same import, but of ditterent length, to suit the measure, or of different sound for the rhyme, would have laid me under a constant necessity of searching for variety, and also have tended to fix that variety in my mind, and make me master of it. Therefore I took some of the tales and turned them into verse; and, after a time, when I had pretty well forgotten the prose, turned them back again. I also sometimes jumbled m.y collections of hints into confusion, and after some weeks endeavored to reduce them into the best order, before 1 began to form the full sentences and compleat the paper. This was to teach me method in the arrangement of thoughts. By comparing my work afterwards with the original, I discovered many faults and amended them; but I sometimes had the pleasure of fancying that, in certain particulars of small import, I had been lucky enough to improve the method or the language, and this encouraged me to think I might possibly in time come to be a tolerable English writer, of which I was extremely ambitious. My time for these exercises and for reading was at night, after work or before it began in the morning, or on Sundays, when I contrived to be in the printing-house alone, evading as much as I could the common attendance on public worship which my father used to exact on me when I was under his care, and which indeed I still thought a duty, though I could not, as it seemed to me, afford time to practise it. When about i6 years of age I happened to meet v/ith a book, written by one Tryon, recommending a vegetable diet. I determined to go into it. My brother, being yet unmarried, did not keep house, but boarded himself and his apprentices in another family. My refusing to eat flesh occasioned an inconveniency, and I was frequently chid for my singularity. I made myself acquainted with Tryon's manner of preparing some of his dishes, such as boiling potatoes or rice, making hasty pudding, and a few others, and then proposed to my brother, that if he would give me, weekly, half the money he paid for my board, I would board myself. He instantly agreed to it, and I presently found that I could save half what he paid me» This vvras an additional fund for buying 18 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN books. But I had another advantage in it. My brother and the rest going from the printing-house to their meals, I remained there alone, and, despatching presently my light repast, which often was no more than a bisket or a slice of bread, a handful of raisins or a tart from the pastry- cook's, and a glass of water, had the rest of the time till their return for study, in which I made the greater progress, from that greater clearness of head and quicker apprehen- sion which usually attend temperance in eating and drinking. And now it was that, being on some occasion made asham'd of my ignorance in figures, w^hich I had twice failed in learning when at school, I took Cocker's book of Arith- metick, and went through the whole by myself with great ease. I also read Seller's and Shermy's books of Navigation, and became acquainted with the little geometry they contain ; but never proceeded far in that science. And I read about this time Locke On Htmmn Understanding, and the Art of Thinking, by Messrs. du Port Royal. While I was intent on improving my language, I met with an English grammar (I think it was Greenwood's), at the end of which there were two little sketches of the arts of rhetoric and logic, the latter finishing with a specim.en of a dispute in the Socratic method; and soon after I procur'd Xenophon's Memorable Things of Socrates, wherein there are many instances of the same method. I was charm'd Vvdth it, adopted it, dropt my abrupt contradiction and positive argumentation, and put en the humble inquirer and doubter. And being then, from reading Shaftesbury and Collins, become a real doubter in many points of our religious doc- trine, I found this method safest for myself and very embar- rassing to those against whom I used it; therefore I took a delight in it, practis'd it continually, and grew very artful and expert in drawing people, even of superior knowledge, into concessions, the consequences of which they did not foresee, entangling them in difiiculties out of which they could not extricate themselves, and so obtaining victories that neither myself nor my cause always deserved. I con- tinu'd this method some few years, but gradually left it, retaining only the habit of expressing myself in terms of modest diffidence; never using, when I advanced any thing HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 19 that may possibly be disputed, the words certainly, undoubt- edly, or any others that give the air of positiveness to an opinion ; but rather say, I conceive or apprehend a thing to be so and so ; it appears to me, or / shoiild think it so or so, for such and such reasons; or / imagine it to he so; or it is so, if I am not mistaken. This habit, I believe, has been of great advantage to me when I have had occasion to incul- cate my opinions, and persuade men into measures that I have been from time to time engag'd in promoting; and, as the chief ends of conversation are to inform or to be informed, to please or to persuade, I wish well-meaning, sensible m.en would not lessen their power of doing good by a positive, assuming manner, that seldom fails to disgust, tends to create opposition, and to defeat every one of those purposes for which speech was given to us, to wit, giving or receiving information or pleasure. For, if you would inform, a positive and dogmatical manner in advancing your sentim.ents may provoke contradiction and prevent a candid attention. If you wish information and im.provement from the knowledge of others, and yet at the same time express yourself as firmly fix'd in your present opinions, m.odest, sensible men, who do not love disputation, will probably leave you undisturbed in the possession of your error. And by such a manner, you can seldom hope to recommend your- self in pleasing your hearers, or to persuade those whose concurrence you desire. Pope says, judiciously: "Men should he taught as if you taught them not. And things unknown propos'd as things forgot; " farther recommending to us " To speak, tho' sure, with seeming diffidence." And he might have coupled with this line that which he has coupled with another, I think, less properly, " For want of modesty is want of sense." If you ask, Why less properly? I must repeat the lines, " Immodest words admit of no defense, For want of modesty is want of sense." Now, is not want of sense (where a man is so unfortunate as to want it) some apology for his want of modesty? and would not the lines stand more justly thus? 20 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN "Immodest words admit but this defense, That want of modesty is want of sense." This, however, I should submit to better judgments. My brother had, in 1720 or 1721, begun to print a news- paper. It was the second that appeared in America, and was called the New England Courant The only one before it was the Boston News-Letter. I remember his being dis- suaded by some of his friends from the undertaking, as not likely to succeed, one newspaper being, in their judgment, enough for America. At this time (1771) there are not less than five-and-twenty. He went on, however, with the undertaking, and after having worked in composing the types and printing off the sheets, I was employed to carry the papers thro' the streets to the customers. He had some ingenious men among his friends, who amus'd themselves by writing little pieces for this paper, which gain'd it credit and made it more in demand, and these gentlemen often visited us. Hearing their conversa- tions, and their accounts of the approbation their papers were received with, I was excited to try my hand among them ; but, being still a boy, and suspecting that my brother would object to printing anything of mine in his paper if he knew it to be mine, I contrived to disguise my hand, and, writing an anonymous paper, I put it in at night under the door of the printing-house. It was found in the morn- ing, and communicated to his writing friends when they call'd in as usual, They read it, commented on it in my hearing, and I had the exquisite pleasure of finding it met with their approbation, and that, in their different guesses at the author, none were named but men of some character among us for learning and ingenuity. I suppose now that I was rather lucky in my judges, and that perhaps they were not really so very good ones as I then esteem'd them. Encourag'd, however, by this, I wrote and convey'd in the same way to the press several more papers which were equally approv'd; and I kept my secret till my small fund of sense for such performances was pretty well exhausted, and then I discovered it, when I began to be considered a little m.ore by my brother's acquaintance, and in a manner that did not quite please him, as he thought, probabl}r HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 21 with reason, that it tended to make me too vain. And, perhaps, this might be one occasion of the differences that we began to have about this time. Though a brother, he considered himself as my master, and me as his appren- tice, and accordingly, expected the same services from me as he would from another, while I thought he demean'd me too much in some he requir'd of me, who from a brother expected more indulgence. Our disputes were often brought before our father, and I fancy I was either gen- erally in the right, or else a better pleader, because the judgmxcnt was generally in my favor. But my brother was passionate, and had often beaten me, which I took ex- treamly amiss ; and, thinking my apprenticeship very tedious, I was continually wishing for some opportunity of shorten- ing it, which at length offered in a manner unexpected.^ One of the pieces in our newspaper on some political point, which I have now forgotten, gave offense to the Assembly. He was taken up, censur'd, and imprison'd for a month, by the speaker's warrant, I suppose, because he would not dis- cover his author. I too was taken up and examin'd before the council; but, tho' I did not give them any satisfaction, they content'd themselves with admonishing me, and dis- missed me, considering me, perhaps, as an apprentice, who was bound to keep his master's secrets. During my brother's confinement, which I resented a good deal, notwithstanding our private differences, I had the management of the paper; and I made bold to give our rulers some rubs in it, which my brother took very kindly, while others began to consider me in an unfavorable light, as a young genius that had a turn for libelling and satyr. My brother's discharge was accompany'd with an order o£ the House (a very odd one), that ''James Franklin should no longer print the paper called the New England Courant" There was a consultation held in our printing-house among his friends, what he should do in this case. Some proposed to evade the order by changing the name of the paper; but my brother, seeing inconveniences in that, it was finally concluded on as a better way, to let it be printed 3 I fancy his harsh and tyrannical treatment of me might be a means of impressing me with that aversion to arbitrary power that has stuck to me through my whole life. 22 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN for the future under the name of Benjamii^ Franklin; and to avoid the censure of the Assembly, that might fall on him as still printing it by his apprentice, the contrivance was that my old indenture should be return'd to me, with a full discharge on the back of it, to be shown on occasion, but to secure to him the benefit of my service, I was to sign new indentures for the remainder of the term^, which were to be kept private. A very flimsy scheme it v/as; however, it was immediately executed, and the paper went on accordingly, under my name for several months. At length, a fresh difference arising between my brother and me, I took upon me to assert my freedom, presuming that he would not venture to produce the new indentures. It was not fair in me to take this advantage, and this I therefore reckon one of the first errata of my life; but the unfairness of it weighed little with me, when under the impressions oi resentment for the blows his passion too often urged him to bestow upon me, though he was otherwise not an ill-natur'd man: perhaps I was too saucy and provoking. AVhen he found I would leave him, he took care to pre- vent my getting employment in any other printing-house of the town, by going round and speaking to every master, who accordingly refus'd to give me work, I then thought of going to New York, as the nearest place where there was a printer; and I was rather inclin'd to leave Boston when I reflected that I had already m.ade myself a little obnoxious to the governing party, and, from the arbitrary proceedings of the Assembly in my brother's case, it was likely I might, if I stay'd, soon bring myself into scrapes; and farther, that my indiscrete disputations about religion began to make me pointed at with horror hy good people as an infidel or atheist. I determin'd on the point, but my father now siding with my brother, I was sensible that, if I attempted to go openly, means would be used to prevent me. My friend Collins, therefore, undertook to manage a little for me. He agreed v/ith the captain of a New York sloop for my passage, under the notion of may being a young acquaintance of his, that had got a naughty girl with child, whose friends would compel me to marry her, HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 23 and therefore I could not appear or come away publicly. So I sold some of my books to raise a little money, was taken on board privately^ and as we had a fair wind, in three days I found myself in New York, near 300 miles from home> a boy of but 17, without the least recommenda- tion to, or knowledge of any person in the place, and with very little money in my pocket. My inclinations for the sea were by this time worne out, or I might now have gratify'd them. Butj having a trade, and supposing myself a pretty good workman, I offer'd my service to the printer in the place, old Mr. William Bradford, who had been the first printer in Penn- sylvania, but removed from thence upon the quarrel of George Keith. He could give me no em.ployment, having little to do, and help enough already ; but says he, " My son at Philadelphia has lately lost his principal hand, Aquila Rose, by death; if you go thither, I believe he may employ you." Philadelphia was a hundred miles ftirther; I set out, however, in a boat for Amboy, leaving my chest and things to follow me round by sea. In crossing the bay, we met with a squall that tore our rotten sails to pieces, prevented our getting into the Kill, and drove us upon Long Island. In our way, a drunken Dutchman, who was a passenger too, fell overboard; when he was sinking, I reached through the water to his shock pate, and drew him up, so that we got him in again. His , ducking sobered him a little, and he went to sleep, taking first out of his pocket a book, which he desir'd I would dry for him. It proved to be my old favorite author, Bun- yan's Pilgrim's Progress, in Dutch, finely printed on good paper, with copper cuts, a dress better than I had ever seen it wear in its own language. I have since found that it has been translated into most of the languages of Europe, and suppose it has been more generally read than any other book, except perhaps the Bible. Honest John was the first that I know of who mix'd narration and dialogue; a method of waiting very engaging to the reader, who in the most interesting parts finds himself, as it were, brought into the company and present at the discourse. De Foe in his Cruso, his Moll Flanders, Religious Courtship, Family 24 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN Instructor, and other pieces, has imitated it with success; and Richardson has done the same in his Pamela, etc. When we drew near the island, we found it was at a place where there could be no landing, there being a great surff on the stony beach. So we dropt anchor, and swung round towards the shore. Some people came down to the water edge and hallow'd to us, as we did to them; but the wind was so high, and the surff so loud, that we could not hear so as to understand each other. There were canoes on the shore, and we made signs^ and hallow'd that they should fetch us; but they either did not understand us, or thought it impracticable^ so they went away, and night coming on, we had no remedy but to wait till the wind should abate; and, in the meantime, the boatman and I con- cluded to sleep, if we could ; and so crowded into the scuttle, with the Dutchman, who was still wet, and the spray beating over the head of our boat, leak'd thro' to us, so that we were soon almost as wet as he. In this manner we lay all night, with very little rest; but, the wind abating the next day, we made a shift to reach Amboy before night, having been thirty hours on the water, without vic- tuals, or any drink but a bottle of filthy rum, and the water we sail'd on being salt. In the evening I found myself very feverish, and went in to bed ; but, having read somewhere that cold water drank plentifully was good for a fever, I follow'd the prescription, sweat plentiful most of the night, my fever left me, and in the morning, crossing the ferry, I proceeded on my journey ©n foot, having fifty miles to Burlington, where I was told I should find boats that would carry me the rest of the way to Philadelphia. It rained very hard all the day; I was thoroughly soak'd, and by noon a good deal tired; so I stopt at a poor inn, where I staid all night, beginning now to wish that I had never left home. I cut so miserable a figure, too, that I found, by the questions ask'd me, I was suspected to be some runaway servant, and in danger of being taken up on that suspicion. However, I proceeded the next day, and got in the evening to an inn, within eight or ten miles of Burlington, kept by one Dr. Brown. He entered into HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 25 conversation with me while I took some refreshment, and, finding I had read a little, became \^ery sociable and friendly. Our acquaintance continu'd as long as he liv'd. He had been, I imagine, an itinerant dootor,' for there was no town in England, or country in Europe, of which he could not give a very particular account. He had some letters, and was in- genious, but much of an unbeliever, and wickedly undertook, some years after, to travestie the Bible in doggrel verse, as Cotton had done Virgil. By this means he set many of the facts in a very ridiculous light, and might have hurt weak minds if his work had been published; but it never was. At his house I lay that night, and the next morning reach'd Burlington, but had the mortification to find that the regular boats were gone a little before my coming, and no other expected to go before Tuesday, this being Satur- day; wherefore I returned to an old woman in the town, of whom I had bought gingerbread to eat on the water, and ask'd her advice. She invited me to lodge at her house till a passage by water should offer; and being tired with my foot travelling, I accepted the invitation. She under- standing I was a printer, would have had me stay at that town and follow my business, being ignorant of the stock necessary to begin with. She was very hospitable, gave me a dinner of ox-cheek with great good will, accepting only a pot of ale in return; and I thought myself fixed till Tuesday should come. However, walking in the evening by the side of the river, a boat came by, which I found was going towards Philadelphia, with several people in her. They took me in, and, as there was no wind, we row'd all the way; and about midnight, not having yet seen the city, some of the company were confident we must have passed it, and would row no farther; the others knew not where we were; so we put toward the shore, got into a cred^, landed near an old fence, with the rails of which we made. a fire, the night being cold, in October, and there we remained till daylight. Then one of the company knew the place to be Cooper's Creek, a little above Philadelphia, which we saw as soon as we got out of the creek, and arriv'd there about eight or nine o'clock on the Sunday morning, and landed at the Market-street wharf. 26 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN I have been the more particular in this description of my journey, and shall be so of my first entry into that city, that you may in your mind compare such unlikely beginnings with the figure I have since made there. I was in my working dress, my best cloaths being to come round by sea. I was dirty from my journey; my pockets were stuff 'd out with shirts and stockings, and I knew no soul nor where to look for lodging. I was fatigued with travelling, rowing, and want of rest, I was very hungry; and my whole stock of cash consisted of a Dutch dollar, and about a shilling in copper. The latter I gave the people of the boat for my passage, who at first ref us'd it, on account of my rowing ; but I insisted on their taking it. A man being sometimes more generous when he has but a little money than when he has plenty, perhaps thro' fear of being thought to have but little. Then I walked up the street, gazing about till near the market-house I met a boy with bread. I had made many a meal on bread, and, inquiring where he got it, I went immediately to the baker's he directed me to, in Second- street, and ask'd for bisket, intending such as we had in Boston; but they, it seems, were not made in Philadelphia. Then I asked for a three-penny loaf, and was told they had none such. So not considering or knovv^ing the difference of money, and the greater cheapness nor the names of his bread, I made him give me three-penny worth of any sort. He gave me, accordingly, three great puffy rolls. I was surpriz'd at the quantity, but took it, and, having no room in my pockets, walk'd off v/ith a roll under each arm, and eating the other. Thus I went up Market-street as far as Fourth-street, passing by the door of Mr. Read, my future wife's father; when she, standing at the door, saw me, and thought I made, as I certainly did, a most awkward, ridiculous appearance. Then I turned and went down Chestnut-street and part of Walnut-street, eating my roll all the way, and^ coming round, found myself again at Market-street wharf, near the boat I came in, to which X went for a draught of the river w^ater; and, being filled iwith one of my rolls, gave the other two to a woman and her child that came down the river in the boat with us, and were waiting to go farther. HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 27 Thus refreshed, I walked again tip the street, which by this time had many clean-dressed people in it, who were all walking the same way. I joined them, and thereby was led into the great meeting-house of the Quakers near the m.arket. I sat down among them, and, after looking round awhile and hearing nothing said, being very drowsy thro' labor and want of rest the preceding night, I fell fast asleep, and continued so till the meeting broke up, when one was kind enough to rouse me. This was^ therefore, the first house I was in, or slept in, in Philadelphia. Walking down again tov/ard the river, and, looking in the faces of people, I met a young Quaker man, whose countenance I lik'd, and, accosting him, requested he would tell me where a stranger could get lodging. We were then near the sign of the Three Mariners. " Here," says he, " is one place that entertains strangers, but it is not a reputable house; if thee wilt walk with ihe, I'll show thee a better." He brought me to the Crooked Billet in Water-street. Here I got a dinner; and, while I was eating it, several sly questions vv'^ere asked me^ as it seemed to be suspected from my youth and appearance, that I might be some runaway. After dinner, my sleepiness return'd, and being shown to a bed, I lay down without undressing, and slept till six in the evening, was call'd to supper, went to bed again very early, and slept soundly till next morning. Then I made myself as tidy as I could, and went to Andrew Brad- ford the printer's. I found in the shop the old man his father, whom I had seen at New York, and who, travelling on horseback, had got to Philadelphia before me. He intro- duc'd me to his son, who receiv'd me civilly, gave me a breakfast, but told me he did not at present want a hand, being lately suppli'd with one; but there was another printer in town, lately set up, one Keimer, Vv^ho, perhaps, might employ me; if not^ I should be v/elcome to lodge at his house, and he would give me a little work to do now and then till fuller business should offer. The old gentleman said he v^^ould go with me to the new printer ; and when we found him, " Neighbor," says Brad- ford, " I have brought to see you a young man of your business; perhaps you may want such a one." He ask'd 28 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN me a £@w qiiesdons, pui a composing stiGk in my hand to see how I woxk'd, and t-tmn said he would emplvith an opinion that the worst had some good effects, induc'd me to avoid all discourse that might tend to lessen the good opinion another might have of his own religion; and as our province increas'd in people, and new places of worship were continually wanted, and generally erected by voluntary con- tributions, m-y mite for such purpose, whatever miight be the sect, was never refused. Tho' I seldom attended any pubHc worship, I had still an opinion of its propriety, and of its utility when rightly con- ducted, and I regularly paid my annual subscription for the support of the only Presbyterian minister or meeting we had in Philadelphia. He us'd to visit me sometimes as a friend, and admonish me to attend his administrations, and I was now and then prevail'd on to do so, once for five Sundays successively. Had he been in my opinion a good preacher, perhaps I might have continued, notwithstanding the occa- sion I had for the Sunday's leisure in my course of study; but his discourses were chiefly either polemic argumxCnts, or explications of the peculiar doctrines of our sect, and were all to me very dry, uninteresting, and unedifying, since not a single m.oral principle was inculcated or enforc'd, their aim seeming to be rather to make us Presbyterians than good citizens. At length he took for his text that verse of the fourth chapter of Philippians, "" Finally, brethren, whatsoever things are true, honest, just, pure, lovely, or of good report, if there he any virtue, or any praise, think on these things'* And I imagin'd, in a sermon on such a text, we could not miss of having some morality. But he confin'd himself to five points only, as meant by the apostle, viz. : i. Keeping holy the Sabbath day. 2. Being diligent in reading the holy Scriptures. 3. Attending duly the publick worship. 4. Partaking of the Sacrament. 5. Paying a due respect to God's ministers. These might be all good things; but, as they were not the kind of good things that I expected from that text, I despaired of ever meeting with them from any other, was disgusted, and attended his preaching no more. I had some years before compos'd a little Liturgy, or form of prayer, for my own private use (viz,, in 1728), entitled. 82 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN Articles of Belief and Acts of Religion. I retuni'd to the use of this, and v^^ent no more to the public assemblies. My conduct might be blameable, but I leave it, without attempt- ing further to excuse it; my present purpose being to relate facts, and not to make apologies for them. It was about this time I conceiv'd the bold and arduous project of arriving at moral perfection. I wish'd to live without committing any fault at any time; I would conquer all that either natural inclination, custom, or company might lead me into. As I knew, or thought I knew, vs^hat was right and wrong, I did not see why I might not always do the one and avoid the other. But I soon found I had undertaken a task of more difficulty than I had imagined. While my care was employ'd in guarding against one fault, I was often surprised by another; habit took the advantage of inattention; inclination was sometimes too strong for reason. I concluded, at length, that the mere spec- ulative conviction that it was our interest to be com- pletely virtuous, was not sufficient to prevent our slipping; and that the contrary habits must be broken, and good ones acquired and established, before we can have any dependence on a steady, uniform rectitude of con- duct. For this purpose I therefore contrived the fol- lowing method. In the various enumerations of the moral virtues I had met with in my reading, I found the catalogue more or less numerous, as different writers included more or fewer ideas under the same name. Temperance, for example, was by some confined to eating and drinking, while by others it was extended to mean the moderating every other pleasure, appe- tite, inclination, or passion, bodily or mental, even to our avarice and ambition. I propos'd to myself, for the sake of clearness, to use rather m.ore names, with fewer ideas annex'd to each, than a few names with more ideas ; and I included under thirteen names of virtues all that at th^t time occurr'd to me as necessary or desirable, and annexed to each a short precept, which fully express'd the extent I gave to its meaning. These names of virtues, .with their precepts, wefe: HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 83 I. Temperance. Eat not to dullness; drink not to elevation. 2. Silence. Speak not but what may benefit others or yourself; avoid trifling conversation. 3. Order. Let all your things have their places; let each part of your business have its time. 4. Resolution. Resolve to perform v/hat you ought; perform without fail what you resolve. 5. Frugality. Make no expense but to do good to others or yourself; i. e., waste nothing. 6. Industry. Lose no time; be always employed in something useful; cut off all unnecessary actions. 7. Sincerity. Use no hurtful deceit; think innocently and justly, and, if you speak, speak accordingly. 8. Justice. Wrong none by doing injuries, or omitting the benefits that are your duty. 9. Moderation. Avoid extreams; forbear resenting injuries so much as you think they deserve. 84 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN 10. Cleanliness. Tolerate no uncleanliness in body, cloaths, or habitation. II. Tranquillity. Be not disturbed at trifles, or at accidents common or ttnavoidabk. 12. Chastity. Rarely use venery but for health or offspring, never to dulness, weakness, or the injury of your own or another's peace or reputation. 13. Humility. Imitate Jesus and Socrates. My intention being to acquire the habitude of all these virtues, I judg'd it would be well not to distract my attention by attempting the whole at once, but to fix it on one of them at a time; and, when I should be master of that, then to proceed to another, and so on, till I should have gone thro' the thirteen; and, as the previous acquisition of some might facilitate the acquisition of certain others, I arrang'd them with that view, as they stand above. Temperance first, as it tends to procure that coolness and clearness of head, which is so necessary where constant vigilance was to be kept up, and guard maintained against the unremitting attraction of ancient habits, and the force of perpetual temptations. This being acquir'd and establish'd. Silence would be more easy ; and my desire being to gain knowledge at the same time that I improv'd in virtue, and considering that in conversation it was obtain'd rather by the use of the ears than of the tongue, and therefore wishing to break a habit I was getting into of prattling, punning, and joking, which only made me acceptable to trifling company, I gave Silence the second place. This and the next, Order, I expected would allow me more time for attending to my project and my studies. Resolution, once become habitual, would keep me firm in my endeavors to obtain all the subse- HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 85 qtient virtues; Frugality and Industry freeing me from my remaining debt, and producing affluence and independence, would make more easy the practice of Sincerity and Justice, etc., etc. Conceiving then, that, agreeably to the advice of Pythagoras in his Golden Verses, daily examination would be necessary, I contrived the following method for conduct- ing that examination. I made a little book, in which I allotted a page for each of the virtues. I rul'd each page with red ink, so as to have seven columns, one for each day of the week, marking each column with a letter for the day. I cross'd these columns v/ith thirteen red lines, marking the beginning of each line with the first letter of one of the virtues, on which line, and in its proper column, I might mark, by a little black spot, every fault I found upon examination to have been committed respecting that virtue upon that day. Form of the pages. TEMPERANCE. EAT NOT TO DULNESS ; DRINK NOT TO ELEVATION. S. M. T. W. T. F. S. T. S. * * * * o. * * * * * * « R. * * F. * * I. * S. J. M. G. T. C. H. - i 86 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN I determined to give a week's strict attention to eacli of the virtues successively. Thus, in the first week, my great guard was to avoid every the least offence against Temper- ance, leaving the other virtues to their ordinary chance, only marking every evening the faults of the day. Thus, if in the first week I could keep my first line, marked T, clear of spots, I suppos'd the habit of that virtue so much strengthen'd, and its opposite weaken'd, that I might venture extending my attention to include the next, and for the following week keep both lines clear of spots. Proceeding thus to the last, I could go thro' a course compleat in thir- teen weeks, and four courses in a year. And like him who, having a garden to weed, does not attempt to eradicate all the bad herbs at once, which would exceed his reach and his strength, but works on one of the beds at a time, and, having accomplish'd the first, proceeds to a second, so I should have, I hoped, the encouraging pleasure of seeing on my pages the progress I made in virtue, by clearing suc- cessively my lines of their spots, till in the end, by a num- ber of courses, I should be happy in viewing a clean book, after a thirteen weeks' daily examination. This my little book had for its motto these lines from Addison's Cato: " Here will I hold. If there's a power above us (And that there is, all nature cries aloud Thro' all her works), He must delight in virtue; And that which he delights in must be happy." Another from Cicero, " O vitse Philosophia dux ! O virtutum indagatrix expultrlxque vitiorum ! Unus dies, bene et ex praeceptis tuis actus, peccanti immortalitati est anteponendus." Another from the Proverbs of Solomon, speaking of wisdom or virtue: " Length of days is in her right hand, and in her left hand riches and honour. Her ways are ways of pleasantness, and all her paths are peace." iii. i6, 17. And conceiving God to be the fountain of wisdom, I thought it right and necessary to solicit his assistance for obtaining it ; to this end I formed the following little prayer. HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 87 which was prefix'd to my tables of examination, for daily- use. "O powerful Goodness! bountiful Father! merciful Guide! Increase in me that zuisdom which discovers my truest interest. Strengthen my resolutions to perform what that wisdom dictates. Accept my kind offices to thy other children as the only return in my power for thy continual favors to me." I used also sometimes a little prayer which I took from Thomson's Poems, viz. : " Father of light and life, thou Good Supreme ! O teach me what is good ; teach me Thyself ! Save me from folly, vanity, and vice, From every low pursuit; and fill my soul With knowledge, conscious peace, and virtue pure; Sacred, substantial, never-fading bliss ! " The precept of Order requiring that every part of my business should have its allotted time, one page in my little book contain'd the following scheme of employment for the twenty-four hours of a natural day: The Morning. Question. What I do this day? good shall < 6 Rise, wash, and address Powerful Goodness! Contrive day's business, and take the resolution of the day; prose- cute the present study, and breakfast. Noon. Evening. vw 9 \. Work. lO II 12 I 2 3 4 5J Question. What good have \ done to-day? Night. Read, or overlook my ac- counts, and dine. Work. Put things in their places. ^ Supper. Music or diversion, 8 ' or conversation. Examinatior 9 ID II 12 I 2 3 L 4X of the day. Sleep. 88 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN I enter'd upon the execution of this plan for self-examina- tion, and continu'd it v/ith occasional intermissions for some time. I was surpris'd to find myself so much fuller of faults than I had imagined; but I had the satisfaction of seeing them diminish. To avoid the trouble of renewing now and then my little book, which, by scraping out the marks on the paper of old faults to make room for new ones in a new course, became full of holes, I transferr'd my tables and precepts to the ivory leaves of a memorandum book, on which the lines were drawn with red ink, that made a durable stain, and on those lines I mark'd my faults with a black-lead pencil, which marks I could easily wipe out with a wet sponge. After a while I went thro' one course only in a year, and afterward only one in several years, till at length I omitted them entirely, being employ'd in voyages and business abroad, with a multiplicity of affairs that inter- fered; but I always carried my little book with me. My scheme of Order gave me the most trouble; and I found that, tho' it might be practicable where a man's busi- ness was such as to leave him the disposition of his time, that of a journeyman printer, for instance, it was not pos- sible to be exactly observed by a master, who must mix with the world, and often receive people of business at their own hours. Order, too, vv^ith regard to places for things, papers, etc., I found extreamly difficult to acquire. I had not been early accustomed to it, and, having an exceeding good memory, I was not so sensible of the inconvenience attending want of method. This article, therefore, cost me so much painful attention, and my faults in it vexed me so much, and I made so little progress in amendment, and had such frequent relapses, that I was almost ready to give up the attempt, and content myself with a faulty character in that respect, like the man who, in buying an ax of a smith, my neighbour, desired to have the whole of its surface as bright as the edge. The smith consented to grind it bright for him if he would turn the wheel; he turn'd, while the smith press'd the broad face of the ax hard and heavily on the stone, which made the turning of it very fatiguing. The man came every now and then from the wheel to see how the work went on, and at length would take his ax as HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 89 it was, without farther grinding. " No," said the smith, " turn on, turn on ; we shall have it bright by-and-by ; as yet, it is only speckled/'' " Yes," said the man, "" but I think I like a speckled ax best/' And I believe this may have been the case with many, who, having, for want of some such means as I employ'd, found the difficulty of obtaining good and breaking bad habits in other points of vice and virtue, have given up the struggle, and concluded that " a speckled ax was best " ; for something, that pretended to be reason, was every now and then suggesting to me that such extream nicety as I exacted of myself might be a kind of foppery in morals, which, if it were known, would make me ridiculous; that a perfect character might be attended with the inconvenience of being envied and hated; and that a benevolent man should allow a few faults in himself, to keep his friends in countenance. In truth, I found myself incorrigible with respect to Order; and now I am grown old, and my memory bad, I feel very sensibly the want of it. But, on the whole, tho' I never arrived at the perfection I had been so ambitious of obtaining, but fell far short of it, yet I was, by the endeavour, a better and a happier man than I otherwise should have been if I had not attempted it; as those who aim at perfect writing by imitating the engraved copies, tho' they never reach the wish'd-for excellence of those copies, their hand is mended by the endeavor, and is tolerable while it continues fair and legible. It may be well my posterity should be informed that to this little artifice, with the blessing of God, their ancestor cw'd the constant felicity of his life, down to his 79th year, in which this is written. What reverses may attend the remainder is in the hand of Providence; but, if they arrive, the reflection on past happiness enjoy'd ought to help his bearing them with more resignation. To Temperance he ascribes his long-continued health, and what is still left to him of a good constitution; to Industry and Frugality, the early easiness of his circumstances and acquisition of his fortune, with all that knowledge that enabled him to be a useful citizen, and obtained for him some degree of reputation among the learned; to Sincerity and Justice, the confidence 90 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN of his country, and the honorable employs it conferred upon him; and to the joint influence of the whole mass of the virtues, even in the imperfect state he was able to acquire them, all that evenness of temper, and that cheerfulness in conversation, which makes his company still sought for, and agreeable even to his younger acquaintance. I hope, there- fore,, that some of my descendants may follow the example and reap the benefit. It will be remark'd that, tho' my schem.e was not wholly without religion, there was in it no mark of any of the distinguishing tenets of any particular sect. I had purposely avoided them; for, being fully persuaded of the utility and excellency of my method, and that it might be serviceable to people in all religions, and intending some time or other to publish it, I would not have any thing in it that should prejudice any one, of any sect, against it. I purposed writing a little comment on each virtue, in which I would have shown the advantages of possessing it, and the mis- chiefs attending its opposite vice; and I should have called my book The Art of Virtue,^ because it would have shown the means and manner of obtaining virtue, which would have distinguished it from the mere exhortation to be good, that does not instruct and indicate the m.eans, but is like the apostle's man of verbal charity, who only without show- ing to the naked and hungry how or where they might get clothes or victuals, exhorted them to be fed and clothed. — James ii. 15, 16. But it so happened that my intention of writing and publishing this comment was never fulfilled. I did, indeed, from time to time, put down short hints of the sentiments, reasonings, etc., to be made use of in it, some of which I have still by me ; but the necessary close attention to private business in the earlier part of my life, and public business since, have occasioned my postponing it; for, it being con- nected in my mind with a great and extensive project, that required the whole man to execute, and which an unforeseen succession of employs prevented my attending to, it has liitherto remain'd unfinish'd. In this piece it was my design to explain and enforce this 'Nothing so likely to make 3 man's fortune as virtne.'^lMarg. note.l f HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 91 doctrine, that vicious actions are not hurtful because they are forbidden, but forbidden because they are hurtful, the nature of man alone considered; that it was, therefore, every one's interest to be virtuous who wish'd to be happy even in this v/orld; and I should, from this circumstance (there being always in the world a number of rich mer- chants, nobility, states, and princes, who have need of honest instruments for the management of their affairs, and such being so rare), have endeavored to convince young persons that no qualities were so likely to make a poor man's fortime as those of probity and integrity. My list of virtues contain'd at first but twelve; but a Quaker friend having kindly informed me that I was gen- erally thought proud; that my pride show'd itself frequently in conversation; that I was not content with being in the right when discussing any point, but was overbearing, and rather insolent, of which he convinc'd me by mentioning several instances ; I determined endeavouring to cure myself, if I could^ of this vice or folly among the rest, and I added Humility to my list, giving an extensive meaning to the word. I cannot boast of much success in acquiring the reality of this virtue, but I had a good deal with regard to the appearance of it. I made it a rule to forbear all direct con- tradiction to the sentiments of others, and all positive asser- tion of my own. I even forbid myself, agreeably to t^e old laws of our Junto, the use of every word or expresjion in the language that imported a fix'd opinion, such as certainly, undoubtedly, etc., and I adopted., instead of them, / conceive, I apprehend, or / imagine a thing to be so or so; or it so appears to me at present. When another asserted some- thing that I thought an error, I deny'd myself the pleasure of contradicting him abruptly, and of showing immediately some absurdity in his proposition ; and in answering I began by observing that in certain cases or circumstances his opinion would be right, but in the present case there appeared or seem'd to me some difference, etc. I soon found the advantage of this change in my manner; the conversations I engag'd in went on more pleasantly. The modest way in which I propos'd my opinions procur'd them a readier recep- 92 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN tion and less contradiction; I had less mortification when I was found to be in the wrong, and I more easily prevail'd with others to give up their mistakes and join with me when I happened to be in the right. And this mode, which I at first put on with some violence to natural inclination, became at length so easy, and so habitual to me, that perhaps for these fifty years past no one has ever heard a dogmatical expression escape me. And to this habit (after m.y character of integrity) I think it principally owing that I had early so much weight with my fellow-citizens when I proposed new institutions, or altera- tions in the old, and so niuch influence in public councils when I became a member; for I was but a bad speaker, never eloquent, subject to much hesitation in my choice of words, hardly correct in language, and yet I generally carried my points. In reality, there is, perhaps, no one of our natural passions so hard to subdue as pride. Disguise it, struggle with it, beat it down, stifle it, mortify it as much as one pleases, it is still alive, and will every now and then peep out and show itself; you will see it, perhaps, often in this history; for, even if I could conceive that I had com.pleatly overcome it, I should probably be proud of my humility. [Thus far written at Passy, 1784.] f / am now ah out to write at home, 'August, iy88, hut can not have the help expected from my papers, many of them being lost in the war. I have, however, found the following "Y 'AVING mentioned a great and extensive project which I had conceiv'd, it seems proper that some account should be here given of that project and its object. Its first rise in my mind appears in the following little paper, accidentally preserv'd, viz. : Observations on my reading history, in Library, May 19th, 1731. " That the great affairs of the world, the wars, revolutions, etc., are carried on and affected by parties. " That the view of these parties is their present general interest, or what they take to be such. " That the different views of these different parties occa- sion all confusion. ** That while a party is carrying on a general design, each man has his particular private interest in view. " That as soon as a party has gain'd its general point, each member becomes intent upon his particular interest; which, thwarting others, breaks that party into divisions, and occasions more confusion. " That few in public affairs act from a meer view of the good of their country, whatever they may pretend; and, tho' their actings bring real good to their country, yet men primarily considered that their own and their country's interest was united, and did not act from a principle of benevolence. " That fewer still, in public affairs, act with a view tQ the good of mankind. s This is a marginal memorandum. — B. 93 94 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN *'THere seems to me at present to be great occasion for raising a United Party for Virtue, by forming the vir- tuous and good men of all nations into a regular body, to be governed by suitable good and wise rules, which good and wise men may probably be more unanimous in their obedience to, than common people are to common laws. " I at present think that whoever attempts this aright, and is well qualified, can not fail of pleasing God, and of meeting with success. B. F." Revolving this project in my mind, as to be undertaken hereafter, when my circumstances should afford me the necessary leisure, I put down from tinie to time, on pieces of paper, such thoughts as occurr'd to me respecting it. Most of these are lost; but I find one purporting to be the substance of an intended creed, containing, as I thought, the essentials of every known religion, and being free of every thing that might shock the professors of any religion. It is express'd in these words, viz. : " That there is one God, who made all things. " That he governs the world by his providence. " That he ought to be worshiped by adoration, prayer, and thanksgiving. " But that the most acceptable service of God is doing good to man. " That the soul is immortal. "And that God will certainly reward virtue and punish vice, either here or hereafter."^ My ideas at that time were, that the sect should be begun and spread at first among young and single men only; that each person to be initiated should not only declare his assent to such creed, but should have exercised himself with the thirteen v/eeks* examination and practice of the virtues, as in the before-mention'd model; that the existence of such a society should be kept a secret, till it was become consid- erable, to prevent solicitations for the admission of improper persons, but that the members should each of them search among his acquaintance for ingenuous, well-disposed youths, to whom, with prudent caution, the scheme should be grad- ^ In the Middle Ages, Franklin, if such a phenomenon as Franklin were possible in the Middle Ages, would probably have been the founder of a monastic order. — B. HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 95 ually comirmnicated ; that the members should engage to afford their advice, assistance^ and support to each other in promoting one another's interests, business, and advancement in life; that, for distinction, we should be call'd The Society of the Free and Easy: free, as being, by the general prac- tice and habit of the virtues, free from the dominion of vice; and particularly by the practice of industry and frugality, free from debt, which exposes a man to confinement, and a species of slavery to his creditors. This is as much as I can now recollect of the project, except that I comm.unicated it in part to two young men, who adopted it with some enthusiasm; but my then narrow circumstances, and the necessity I was under of sticking close to my business, occasion'd my postponing the further prosecution of it at that time; and my multifarious occupa- tions, public and private, induc'd me to continue post- poning, so that it has been omitted till I have no longer strength or activity left sufficient for such an enterprise; tho* I am still of opinion that it was a practicable scheme, and mJght have been very useful, by forming a great num- ber of good citizens ; and I was not discourag'd by the seem- ing magnitude of the undertaking, as I have always thought that one man of tolerable abilities may work great changes, and accomplish great affairs among mankind, if he first forms a good plan, and, cutting off all amusements or other employments that would divert his attention, makes the exe- cution of that same plan his sole study and business. In 1732 I first publish'd my Almanack, under the name of Richard Saunders; it was continu'd by me about twenty- five years, commonly call'd Poor Richard's Almanac. I endeavor'd to make it both entertaining and useful, and it accordingly came to be in such demand, that I reap'd con- siderable profit from it, vending annually near ten thousand. And observing that it was generally read, scarce any neigh- borhood in the province being without it, I consider'd it as a proper vehicle for conveying instruction among the com- mon people, who bought scarcely any other books; I there- fore filled all the little spaces that occurr'd between the remarkable days in the calendar with proverbial sentences, chiefly such as inculcated industry and frugality, as the 96 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN means of procuring wealth, and thereby securing virtue; it being more difficult for a man in want, to act always hon- estly, as, to use here one of those proverbs, it is hard for an empty sack to stand upright. These proyerbs, which contained the wisdom of many ages and nations, I assem^bled and form'd into a connected discourse prefix'd to the Almanack of 1757, as the harangue of a wise old man to the people attending an auction. The bringing all these scatter'd counsels thus into a focus enabled them to make greater impression. The piece, being univer- sally approved, was copied in all the newspapers of the Con- tinent ; reprinted in Britain on a broad side, to be stuck up in houses; two translations were made of it in French, and great numbers bought by the clergy and gentry, to distribute gratis among their poor parishioners and tenants. In Penn- sylvania, as it discouraged useless expense in foreign super- fluities, somiC thought it had its share of influence in pro- ducing that growing plenty of money which was observable for several years after its publication. I considered my newspaper, also, as another means of communicating instruction, and in that view frequently reprinted in it extracts from the Spectator, and other moral writers; and sometimes publish'd little pieces of my own, which had been first compos'd for reading in our Junto. Of these are a Socratic dialogue, tending to prove that, what- ever might be his parts and abilities, a vicious man could not properly be called a man of sense; and a discourse on self-denial, showing that virtue was not secure till its prac- tice became a habitude, and was free from the opposition of contrary inclinations. These may be found in the papers about the beginning of 1735. In the conduct of my newspaper, I carefully excluded all libelling and personal abuse, which is of late years become so disgraceful to our country. Whenever I was solicited to insert anything of that kind, and the writers pleaded, as they generally did, the liberty of the press, and that a news- p»aper was like a stage-coach, in which any one who would pay had a right to a place, my answer was, that I would print the piece separately if desired, and the author mxight have as many copies as he pleased to distribute himself, HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 97 but that I would not take upon me to spread his detraction; and that, having contracted with my subscribers to furnish them with what might be either useful or entertaining, I could not fill their papers with private altercation, in which they had no concern, without doing them manifest injustice. Now, many of our printers make no scruple of gratifying the malice of individuals by false accusations of the fairest characters among ourselves, augmenting animosity even to the producing of duels; and are, moreover, so indiscreet as to print scurrilous reflections on the government of neigh- boring states, and even on the conduct of our best national allies, which may be attended with the most pernicious con- sequences. These things I mention as a caution to young printers, and that they may be encouraged not to pollute their presses and disgrace their profession by such infamous prac- tices, but refuse steadily, as they may see by my example that such a course of conduct will not, on the whole, be in- jurious to their interests. In 1733 I sent one of my journeymen to Charleston, Soutfi Carolina, where a printer was wanting. I furnish'd him with a press and letters, on an agreement of partnership, by which I was to receive one-third of the profits of the business, paying one-third of the expense. He was a man of learning, and honest but ignorant in matters of account; and, tho' he sometimes made me remittances, I could get no account from him, nor any satisfactory state of our partner- ship while he lived. On his decease, the business was con- tinued by his widow, who, being born and bred in Holland, where, as I have been inform' d, the knowledge of accounts makes a part of fem.ale education, she not only sent me as clear a state as she could find of the transactions past, but continued to account with the greatest regularity and exact- ness every quarter afterwards, and m.anaged the business with such success, that she not only brought up reputably a family of children, but, at the expiration of the term, was able to purchase of me the printing-house, and establish her son in it. I mention this affair chiefly for the sake of recommend- ing that branch of education for our young females, as likely to be of more use to them and their children, in case of 4 HO— Vol. 1 98 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN widowhood, than either music or dancing, by preserving them from losses by imposition of crafty men, and enabling them to continue, perhaps, a profitable mercantile house, with established correspondence, till a son is grown up fit to undertake and go on with it, to the lasting advantage and enriching of the family. About the year 1734 there arrived among us from Ireland a young Presbyterian preacher, named Hemphill, who de- livered with a good voice, and apparently extempore, most excellent discourses, which drew together considerable num- bers of different persuasion, who join'd in admiring them. Among the rest, I became one of his constant hearers, his sermons pleasing me, as they had little of the dogmatical kind, but inculcated strongly the practice of virtue, or what in the religious stile are called good works. Those, however, of our congregation, who considered themselves as orthodox Presbyterians, disapprov'd his doctrine, and were join'd by most of the old clergy, who arraign'd him of heterodoxy before the synod, in order to have him silenc'd. I became his zealous partisan, and contributed all I could to raise a party in his favour, and we combated for him a while with some hopes of success. There was much scribbling pro and con upon the occasion; and finding that, tho' an elegant preacher, he was but a poor writer, I lent him my pen and wrote for him two or three pamphlets, and one piece in the Gazette of April, 1735. Those pamphlets, as is generally the case with controversial writings, tho' eagerly read at the time, were soon out of vogue, and I question whether a single copy of them now exists. Puring the contest an unlucky occurrence hurt his cause exceedingly. One of our adversaries having heard him preach a sermon that was much admired, thought he had somewhere read the sermon before, or at least a part of it. On search he found that part quoted at length, in one of the British Reviews, from a discourse of Dr. Foster's. This detection gave many of our party disgust, who accordingly abandoned his cause, and occasioned our more speedy discom- fiture in the synod. I stuck by him, hovv^ever, as I rather approv'd Us giving us good sermons compos'd by others, than bad ones of his own manufacture, tho' the latter was HIS AUTOBIOGRAPHY 99 the practice of our common teachers. He afterward acknowl- edg'd to me that none of those he preach'd were his own; adding, that his memory was such as enabled him to retain and repeat any sermon after one reading only. On our defeat, he left us in search elsewhere of better fortune, and I quitted the congregation, never joining it after, tho' I continu'd many years my subscription for the support of its ministers. I had begun in 1733 to study languages; I soon made myself so much a master of the French as to be able to read the books with ease. I then undertook the Italian. An acquaintance, who was also learning it, us'd often to tempt me to play chess with him. Finding this took up too much of the time I had to spare for study, I at length refus'd to play any more, unless on this condition, that the victor in every game should have a right to impose a task, either in parts of the grammar to be got by heart, or in transla- tionSj etc., which tasks the vanquish'd was to perform upon honour, before our next meeting. As we play'd pretty equally, we thus beat one another into that language. I afterwards with a little painstaking, acquir'd as much of the Spanish as to read their books also. I have already mention'd that I had only one year's in- struction in a Latin school,, and that when very young, after which I neglected that language entirely. But, when I had attained an acquaintance with the French, Italian, and Spanish, I was surpriz'd to find, on looking over a Latin Testament, that I understood so much more of that language than I had imagined, which encouraged me to apply myself again to the study of it, and I met with more success, as those preceding languages had greatly smooth'd my way. From these circumstances, I have thought that there is some inconsistency in our common mode of teaching lan- guages. We are told that it is proper to begin first with the Latin, and, having acquir'd that, it will be more easy to attain those modern languages which are deriv'd from it; and yet we do not begin with the Greek, in order more easily to acquire the Latin. It is true that, if you can clamber and get to the top of a staircase v/ithout using the steps, you will mere easily gain them in descending; but 100 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN certainly, if you begin with the lowest you will with more ease ascend to the top; and I would therefore offer it to the consideration of those who superintend the education of our youth, whether, since many of those who begin with the Latin quit the same after spending some years without having made any great proficiency, and what they have learnt becomes almost useless, so that their time has been lost, it would not have been better to have begun with the French, proceeding to the Italian, etc.; for, tho', after spending the same time, they should quit the study of lan- guages and never arrive at the Latin, they would, however, have acquired another tongue or two, that, being in modern use, might be serviceable to them in common life. After ten years' absence from Boston, and having become easy in my circumstances, I made a journey thither to visit my relations, which I could not sooner well afford. In returning, I call'd at Newport to see my brother, then settled thdre with his printing-house. Our former differences were forgotten, and our meeting was very cordial and affec- tionate. He was fast declining in his health, and requested of me that, in case of his death, which he apprehended not far distant, I would take home his son, then but ten years of age, and bring him up to the printing business. This I accordingly perform'd, sending him a few years to school before I took him into the office. His mother carried on the business till he was grown up, when I assisted him with an assortment of new types, those of his father being in a manner worn out. Thus it was that I made my brother ample amends for the service I had depriv'd him of by leaving him so early. In 1736 I lost one of my sons, a fine boy of four years old, by the small-pox, taken in the common way. I long regretted bitterly, and still regret that I had not given it to him by inoculation. This I mention for the sake of parents who omit that operation, on the supposition that they should never forgive themselves if a child died under it; my example showing that the regret may be the same either way, and that, therefore, the safer should be chosen. Our club, the Junto, was found so useful, and afforded such satisfaction to the members, that several were desirous of introducin, without exce : number, viz., a rule to keep ; observ'd; the i persons for ad find it difficult . against any adc in writing a pr endeavor to fo^ respecting quer connection with the improvemen of our institutic sentiments of th member might j was to report to the promotion of extensive recommt in public affairs, a thro' the several c The project j'o «-- to form his club, but l only were compleated, w as the Vine, the Union, t themselves, and afforded information, and instruction considerable degree, our vie opinion on particular occasion:^ instances in course of time as i. My first promotion was my beix- of the General Assembly. The cho. without opposition; but the year foi .. again propos'd (the choice, like that of ..' annual), a new member made a long speeu order to favour some other candidate. I v chosen, which was the more agreeable to me, as, pay for the immediate service as clerk, the place g better opportunity of keeping up an interest amoi.^ members, which secur'd to me the business o£ printing nal jobbs for itable. i new member, m, with talents nfluence in the I did not, how- / servile respect method. Hav- ain very scarce expressing my ig he would do ' days. He sent ^t a week with J of the favour. to me (which he civility; and he J me on all occa- vrong methods to get a living. I have been informed that there is a large number of Friends in 5':our parts who have no slaves; and in tender and most affectionate love I beseech you to keep clear from purchasing any. Look, my dear friends, to Divine Provi- dence, and follow in simplicity that exercise of body, that 220 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN plainness and frugality, which true wisdom leads to; so may you be preserved from those dangers which attend such as are aiming at outward ease and greatness. Treasures, though small, attained on a true principle of virtue, are sweet; and while we walk in the light of the Lord there is true comfort and satisfaction in the possession ; neither the murmurs of an oppressed people, nor a throbbing, uneasy conscience, nor anxious thoughts about the events of things, hinder the enjoyment of them. When we look towards the end of life, and think on the division of our substance among our successors, if we know that it was collected in the fear of the Lord, in honesty, in equity, and in uprightness of heart before him, we may con- sider it as his gift to us, and with a single eye to his bless- ing, bestow it on those we leave behind us. Such is the happiness of the plain ways of true virtue. " The work of righteousness shall be peace; and the effect of righteous- ness, quietness and assurance forever." (Isa. xxxii. 17.) Dwell here, my dear friends; and then in remote and solitary deserts you may find true peace and satisfaction. If the Lord be our God, in truth and reality, there is safety for us : for he is a stronghold in the day of trouble, and knoweth them that trust in him. Isle of Wight County, in Virginia, 20th of the 5th month, 1757. From the Yearly Meeting in Virginia I went to Carolina, and on the first of sixth month was at Wells Monthly Meet- ing, where the spring of the gospel ministry was opened, and the love of Jesus Christ experienced among us ; to his name be the praise. Here my brother joined with some Friends from New Garden who Vv^ere going homeward; and I went next to Simons Creek Monthly Meeting, where I was silent during the meeting for worship. When business came on, my mind was exercised concerning the poor slaves, but I did not feel my way clear to speak. In this condition I was bowed in spirit before the Lord, and with tears and inward supplica- tion besought him so to open my understanding that I might know his v/ill concerning me ; and, at length, my mind was THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 221 settled in silence. Near the end of their business a member of their meeting expressed a concern that had some time lain upon him, on account of Friends so much neglecting their duty in the education of their slaves, and proposed having meetings sometimes appointed for them on a week- day, to be attended only by some Friends to be named in their Monthly Meetings. Many present appeared to unite with the proposal. One said he had often wondered that they, being our fellow-creatures, and capable of religious under- standing, had been so exceedingly neglected; another ex- pressed the like concern, and appeared zealous that in future it might be more closely considered. At length a m-inute was made, and the further consideration of it referred to their next Monthly Meeting. The Friend who made this proposal hath negroes ; he told me that he was at New Garden, about two hundred and fifty miles from home, and came back alone ; that in this solitary journey this exercise, in regard to the education of their negroes, was from time to time renewed in his mind. A Friend of some note in Virginia, who hath slaves, told me that he being far from home on a lonesome journey had m.any serious thoughts about them.; and his mind was so impressed therewith that he believed he saw a time coming when Divine Providence v/ould alter the circum- stance of these people, respecting their condition as slaves. From hence I went to a meeting at Nev^^begun Creek, and sat a considerable time in much weakness; then I felt truth open the way to speak a little in much plainness and simplicity, till at length, through the increase of Divine love amongst us, we had a seasoning opportunity. This was also the case at the head of Little River, where we had a crowded meeting on a first-day. I went thence to the Old Neck, where I was led into a careful searching out of the secret workings of the mystery of iniquity, which, under a cover of religion exalts itself against that pure spirit which leads in the way of meekness and self-denial. Pineywoods was the last meeting I was at in Carolina; it was large, and my heart being deeply engaged, I was drawn forth into a fervent labor amongst them. When I was at Newbegun Creek a Friend was there who labored for his living, having no negroes, and who had 222 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN been a minister many years. He came to me the next day, and as we rode together, he signified that he wanted to talk with me concerning a difficulty he had been under, which he related nearly as follows: That as moneys had of late years been raised by a tax to carry on the wars, he had a scruple in his mind in regard to paying it, and chose rather to suffer restraint of his goods; but as he was the only person who refused it in those parts, and knew not that any one else was in the like circumstances, he signified that it had been a heavy trial to him, especially as some of his brethren had been uneasy with his conduct in that case. He added, that from a sympathy he felt with me yesterday in meeting, he found freedom thus to open the matter in the way of querying concerning Friends in our parts; I told him the state of Friends amongst us as well as I was able, and also that I had for some time been under the like scru- ple. I believed him to be one who v/as concerned to walk uprightly before the Lord, and esteemed it my duty to pre- serve this note concerning him, Samuel Newby. From hence I went back into Virginia, and had a meeting near James Cowpland's; it was a time of inward suffering, but through the goodness of the Lord I was made content; at another meeting, through the renewings of pure love, we had a very comfortable season. Travelling up and down of late, I have had renewed evi- dences that to be faithful to the Lord, and content with his will concerning me, is a most necessary and useful lesson for me to be learning ; looking less at the effects of my labor than at the pure motion and reality of the concern, as it arises from heavenly love. In the Lord Jehovah is ever- lasting strength; and as the mind, by humble resignation, is united to Him, and we utter words from an inward knowledge that they arise from the heavenly spring, though our Vv'ay may be difficult, and it may require close attention to keep in it, and though the matter in which we may be led may tend to our own abasement; yet, if we continue in patience and meekness, heavenly peace will be the reward of our labors. I attended Curies Meeting, which, though small, was re- viving to the honest-hearted. Afterwards I went to Black THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 223 Creek and Caroline Meetings, from whence, accompanied by William Standiey before mentioned, I rode to Goose Creek, being much through the woods, and about one hun- dred miles. We lodged the first night at a public-house; the second in the woods; and the next day we reached a Friend's house at Goose Creek. In the wcJods we were under some disadvantage, having no fire-works nor bells for our horses, but we stopped a little before night and let them feed on the wild grass, which was plentiful, in the mean time cutting with our knives a store against night. We then secured our horses, and gathering some bushes under an oak we lay down; but the mosquitoes being numerous and the ground damp I slept but little. Thus lying in the wilderness, and looking at the stars, I was led to contemplate on the condition of our first parents when they were sent forth from the garden; how the Almighty, though they had been disobedient, continued to be a father to them, and showed them what tended to their felicity as intelligent creatures, and was acceptable to him. To provide things relative to our outward living, in the way of true wisdom, is good, and the gift of improving in things useful is a good gift, and comes from the Father of Lights. Many have had this gift; and from age to age there have been improvements of this kind made in the world. But some, not keeping to the pure gift, have in the creaturely cunning and self-exaltation sought out many inventions. As the first motive to these inventions of men, as distinct from that uprightness in which man was created, was evil, so the effects have been and are evil. It IS, therefore, as necessary for us at this day constantly to attend on the heavenly gift, to be qualified to use rightly the good things in this life, amidst great improvements, as it was for our first parents when they were without any improve- ments, without any friend or father but God only. I was at a meeting at Goose Creek, and next at a Monthly Meeting at Fairfax, where, through the gracious dealing of the Almighty with us, his power prevailed over many hearts. From thence I went to Monoquacy and Pipe Creek in Mary- land; at both places I had cause humbly to adore Him who had supported me through many exercises, and by whose help I was enabled to reach the true witness in the hearts of 224 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN others. There were some hopeful young people in those parts. I had meetings afterwards at John Everit's, in Mona- len, and at Huntingdon, and I was made humbly thankful to the Lord, who opened my heart amongst the people in these new settlements, so that it was a time of encourage*- ment to the honest-minded. At Monalen a Friend gave me some account of a religious society among the Dutch called Mennonists, and amongst other things related a passage in substance as follows : One oi- the Mennonists having acquaintance with a man of another society at a considerable distance, and being with his wagon on business near the house of his said acquaintance, and night coming on, he had thoughts of putting up with him, but passing by his fields, and observing the distressed appearance of his slaves, he kindled a fire in the woods hard by, and lay there that night. His said acquaintance hearing where he lodged, and afterward meeting the Mennonist, told him of it, adding he should have been heartily welcome at his house, and from their acquaintance in former time won- dered at his conduct in that case. The Mennonist replied, " Ever since I lodged by thy field I have wanted an oppor- tunity to speak with thee. I had intended to come to thy house for entertainment, but seeing thy slaves at their work, and observing the manner of their dress, I had no liking to come to partake with thee." He then admonished him to use them with more humanity, and added, " As I lay by the fire that night, I thought that as I was a man of substance thou wouldst have received me freely; but if I had been as poor as one of thy slaves, and had no power to help myself, I should have received from thy hand no kinder usage than they." In this journey I was out about two months, and travelled about eleven hundred and fifty miles. I returned home under an humbling sense of the gracious dealings of the Lord with me, in preserving me through many trials and afflictions. CHAPTER V 1757. 1758 Considerations on tlie Payment of a Tax laid for Carrying on the War against the Indians — Meetings of the Committee of the Yearly Meeting at Philadelphia — Som.e Notes on Thomas a Kempis and John Huss — The present Circumstances of Friends in Pennsylvania and New Jersey very Different from those of our Predecessors — The Drafting of the Militia in New Jersey to serve in the Army, with some Observations on the State of the Members of our Society at that time — Visit to Friends in Pennsylvania, accompanied by Benjamin Jones — Proceedings at the Monthly, Quarterly, and Yearly Meetings in Philadelphia, respecting those who keep Slaves FEW years past, money being made current in our province for carrying on wars, and to be called in again by taxes laid on the inhabitants, my mind was often affected with the thoughts of paying such taxes; and I believe it right for me to preserve a memorandum con- cerning it. I was told that Friends in England frequently paid taxes, when the money was applied to such purposes. I had conversation with several noted Friends on the sub- ject, who all favored the payment of such taxes; some of them I preferred before myself, and this made me easier for a time; yet there was in the depth of my mind a scruple which I never could get over; and at certain times I was greatly distressed on that account. I believed that there v/ere some upright-hearted men whO' paid such taxes, yet could not see that their example was a sufficient reason for me to do so, while I believe that the spirit of truth required of me, as an individual, to suffer patiently the distress of goods, rather than pay actively. To refuse the active payment of a tax v/hich our Societj generally paid was exceedingly disagreeable; but to do g 8 225 HC— Vol. 1 226 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAH thing contrary to my conscience appeared yet more dreadful When this exercise came upon me, I knew of none under the Hke difficulty; and in my distress I besought the Lord to enable me to give up all that so I might follow him wheresoever he was pleased to lead me. Under this exer- cise I went to our Yearly Meeting at Philadelphia in the year 1755; at which a committee was appointed of some from each Quarterly Meeting, to correspond with the meet- ing for sufferers in London; and another to visit our Monthly and Quarterly Meetings. After their appointment, before the last adjournment of the meeting, it was agreed that these tvv^o committees should meet together in Friends' school-house in the city, to consider some things in which the cause of truth was concerned. They accordingly had a weighty conference in the fear of the Lord; at which time I perceived there were many Friends under a scruple like that before mentioned.^ As scrupling to pay a tax on account of the application hath seldorn been heard of heretofore, even amongst men of integrity, who have steadily borne their testimony against outward wars in their time, I may therefore note some tilings which have occurred to my mind, as I have been inwardly exercised on that account. From the steady opposi- tion which faithful Friends in early times made to wrong things then approved, they were hated and persecuted by men living in the spirit of this world, and suffering with firmness, they were made a blessing to the church, and the work prospered. It equally concerns men in every age to take heed to their own spirits; and in comparing their sit- uation with ours, to me it appears that there was less danger of their being infected with the spirit of this world, in pay- ing such taxes, than is the case with us now. They had little or no share in civil government, and many of them declared that they were, through the power of God, sepa- rated from the spirit in which wars were, and being afflicted by the rulers on accoimt of their testimony, there was less likelihood of their uniting in spirit with them in things inconsistent with the purity of truth. We, from the first ^ Christians refused to pay taxes to support heathen temples. See Cave's Primitive Christianity, Part III., p. 327, THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 227 settlement of this land, have known little or no troubles of that sort. The profession of our predecessors was for a time accounted reproachful, but at length their uprightness being understood by the rulers, and their innocent sufferings moving them, our way of worship was tolerated, and many of our members in these colonies became active in civil government. Being thus tried with favor and prosperity, this world appeared inviting; our minds have been turned to the improvement of our country, to merchandise and the sciences, amongst which are many things useful, if followed in pure wisdom; but in our present condition I believe it will not be denied that a carnal mind is gaining upon us. Some of our members, who are officers in civil government, are in one case or other, called upon in their respective sta- tions to assist in things relative to the wars; but being in doubt whether to act or to crave to be excused from their office, if they see their brethren united in the payment of a tax to carry on the said wars, may think their case not much different, and so might quench the tender movings of the Holy Spirit in their minds. Thus, by small degrees, we might approach so near to fighting that the distinction would be little else than the name of a peaceable people. It requires great self-denial and resignation of ourselves to God, to attain that state wherein we can freely cease from fighting when wrongfully invaded, if, by our fighting, there were a probability of overcoming the invaders. Who- ever rightly attains to it does in some degree feel that spirit in which our Redeemer gave his life for us; and through Divine goodness many of our predecessors, and many now living, have learned this blessed lesson; but many others, having their religion chiefly by education, and not being enough acquainted with that cross which crucifies to the world, do manifest a temper distinguishable from that of an entire trust in God. In calmly considering these things, it hath not appeared strange to me that an exercise hath now fallen upon some, which, with respect to the outward means, is different from what was known to many of those who went before us. Some time after the Yearly Meeting, the said committees met at Philadelphia, and, by adjournments, continued sitting 228 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN several days. The calamities of war were now increasing; the frontier inhabitants of Pennsylvania were frequently surprised; some were slain, and many taken captive by the Indians; and while these committees sat, the corpse of one so slain was brought in a wagon, and taken through the streets of the city in his bloody garments, to alarm the people and rouse them to war. Friends thus met were not all of one mind in relation to the tax, which, to those who scrupled it, made the way more difficult. To refuse an active payment at such a time might be construed into an act of disloyalty, and appeared likely to displease the rulers, not only here but in England; still there was a scruple so fixed on the minds of many Friends that nothing moved it. It was a conference the most weighty that ever I was at, and the hearts of many were bowed in reverence before the Most High. Some Friends of the said committees who appeared easy to pay the tax, after several adjournments, withdrew; others of them continued till the last. At length an epistle of tender love and caution to Friends in Pennsylvania was drawn up, and being read several times and corrected, was signed by such as were free to sign it, and afterward sent to the Monthly and Quar- terly Meetings. Ninth of eight month, 1757. — Orders came at night to the military officers in our county (Burlington), directing them to draft the militia, and prepare a number of men to go off as soldiers, to the relief of the English at Fort William Henry, in New York governmient; a few days after which, there was a general review of the militia at Mount Holly, and a number of men were chosen and sent off under some officers. Shortly after, there came orders to draft three times as many, who were to hold themselves in readiness to march when fresh orders came. On the 17th there was a meeting of the military officers at Mount Holly, who agreed on draft; orders were sent to the men so chosen to meet their respective captains at set times and places, those in our township to meet at Mount HoUy^ amongst whom were a considerable number of our Societyo My mind being affected herewith, I had fresh opportunity to see and consider the advantage of living in the real substance of religion, where THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 229 practice doth harmonize with principle. Amongst the officers are men of understanding, who have some regard to sincerity where they see it; and when such in the execu- tion of their office have men to deal with whom they believe to be upright-hearted, it is a painful task to put them to trouble on account of scruples of conscience, and they will be likely to avoid it as much as easily may be. But where men profess to be so meek and heavenly-minded, and to have their trust so firmly settled in God that they cannot join in wars, and yet by their spirit and conduct in common life manifest a contrary disposition, their difficulties are great at such a time. When officers who are anxiously endeavoring to get troops to answer the dem.ands of their superiors see men who are insincere pretend scruple of conscience in hopes of being excused from a dangerous employment, it is likely they will be roughly handled. In this time of commotion some of our young men left these parts and tarried abroad till it was over; som_e came, and proposed to go as soldiers; others appeared to have a real tender scruple in their minds against joining in wars, and were much humbled under the appre- hension of a trial so near. I had conversation with several of them to my satisfaction. When the captain came to town, some of the last-mentioned went and told him in substance as follows: That they could not bear arms for conscience' sake; nor could they hire any to go in their places, being resigned as to the event. At length the captain acquainted them all that they might return home for the present, but he required them to provide themselves as soldiers, and be in readiness to march when called upon. This was such a time as I had not seen before; and yet I may say, with thankfulness to the Lord, that I believed the trial was in- tended for our good; and I was favored with resignation to him. The French army having taken the fort they were besieging, destroyed it and went away ; the company of men who were first drafted, after some days' march, had orders to return home, and those on the second draft were no more called upon on that occasion. Fourth of fourth mionth, ly^S. — Orders came to some offi- cers in Mount Holly to prepare quarters for a short time for 230 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN about one hundred soldiers. An officer and two other men, all inhabitants of our town came to my house. The officer told me that he came to desire me to provide lodging and enter- tainment for two soldiers, and that six shillings a week per man would be allowed as pay for it. The case being new and unexpected I made no answer suddenly, but sat a time silent, my mind being inward. I was fully convinced that the pro- ceedings in wars are inconsistent with the purity of the Christian religion; and to be hired to entertain men, who were then under pay as soldiers, was a difficulty with me. I expected they had legal authority for what they did; and after a short time I said to the officer, if the men are sent here for entertainment I believe I shall not refuse to admit them into my house, but the nature of the case is such that I expect I cannot keep them on hire; one of the men in- tim.ated that he thought I might do it consistently with my religious principles. To which I made no reply, believing silence at that time best for me. Though they spake of two, there came only one, who tarried at my house about two weeks, and behaved himself civilly. When the officer came to pay me, I told him. I could not take pay, having admitted him into my house in a passive obedience to authority. I was on horseback when he spake to me, and as I turned from him, he said he was obliged to me; to v/hich I said nothing; but, thinking on the expression, I grew uneasy; and after- wards, being ndar where he lived, I went and told him on what grounds I refused taking pay for keeping the soldier. I have been informed that Thomas a Kempis lived and died in the profession of the Roman Catholic religion; and, in reading his writings, I have believed him to be a man of a true Christian spirit, as fully so as many who died martyrs because they could not join with some superstitions in that church. All true Christians are of the same spirit, but their gifts are diverse, Jesiis Christ appointing to each one his peculiar office, agreeably to his infinite wisdom. John Huss contended against the errors which had crept into the church, in opposition to the Council of Constance, which the historian reports to have consisted of some thou- sand persons. He modestly vindicated the cause which he believed was right; and though his language and conduct THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 231 towards his judges appear to have been respectful, yet he never could be moved from the principles settled in his mind. To use his own words : " This I most humbly require and desire of you all, even for his sake who is the God of us all, that I be not compelled to the thing which my con- science doth repugn or strive against." And again, in his answer to the Emperor : " I refuse nothing, most noble Em- peror, whatsoever the council shall decree or determine upon me, only this one thing I except, that I do not offend God and my conscience."^ At length, rather than act contrary to that which he believed the Lord required of him, he chose to suffer death by fire. Thomas a Kempis, without disputing against the articles then generally agreed to, appears to have labored, by a pious example as well as by preaching and writing, to promote virtue and the inward spiritual re- ligion ; and I believe they were both sincere-hearted followers of Christ. True charity is an excellent virtue; and sincerely to labor for their good, whose belief in all points doth not agree with ours, is a happy state. Near the beginning of the year 1758, I went one evening, in company with a friend, to visit a sick person ; and before our return we were told of a woman living near, who had for several days heen disconsolate, occasioned by a dream, wherein death, and the judgments of the Almighty after death, were represented to her mind in a moving manner. Her sadness on that account being worn off, the friend with whom I was in company went to see her, and had some re- ligious conversation with her and her husband. With this visit they Vv^ere somewhat affected, and the man, with many tears, expressed his satisfaction. In a short time after the poor man, being on the river in a storm of wind, was with one more drowned. Eighth month, 1758. — Having had drawings in my mind to be at the Quarterly Meeting in Chester County, and at some meetings in the county of Philadelphia, I went first to said Quarterly Meeting, which was large. Several weighty matters came under consideration and debate, and the Lord was pleased to qualify some of his servants with strength and firmness to bear the burden of the day. Though 2 Fox's Acts and Monuments, p. 233. 232 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN I said but little, my mind was deeply exercised; and, under a sense of God's love, in the anointing and fitting of some young men for his work, I was comforted, and my heart was tendered before him. From hence I went to the Youth's Meeting at Darby, where my beloved friend and brother Benjamin Jones met me by appointment before I left home, to join in the visit. We were at Radnor, Merion, Richland, North Wales, Plymouth, and Abington meetings, and had cause to bow in reverence before the Lord, our gracious God, by whose help way was opened for us fromi day to day. I was out about two weeks, and rode about two hun- dred miles. The Monthly Meeting of Philadelphia having been under a concern on account of some Friends who this summer (1758) had bought negro slaves, proposed to their Quarterly Meeting to have the minute reconsidered in the Yearly Meeting, which was made last on that subject, and the said Quarterly Meeting appointed a committee to consider it, and to report to their next. This committee having met once and adjourned, and I, going to Philadelphia to meet a committee of the Yearly Meeting, was in town the evening on which the Quarterly Meeting's committee met the second time, and finding an inclination to sit with them, I, with some others, was admitted, and Friends had a weighty con- ference on the subject. Soon after their next Quarterly meeting I heard that the case was coming to our Yearly Meeting. This brought a weighty exercise upon me, and under a sense of my own infirmities, and the great danger I felt of turning aside from perfect purity, my mind was often drawn to retire alone, and put up my prayers to the Lord that he would be graciously pleased to strengthen me ; that setting aside all views of self-interest and the friendship of this world, I might stand fully resigned to his holy will. In this Yearly Meeting several weighty matters were con- sidered, and toward the last that in relation to dealing with persons who purchase slaves. During the several sittings of the said meeting, my mind was frequently covered with inward prayer, and I could say with David, "that tears were my meat day and night." The case of slave-keeping lay heavy upon me, nor did I find any engagement to speak THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 233 directly to any other matter before the meeting. Now when this case was opened several faithful Friends spake weightily thereto, with which I was comforted; and feeling a concern to cast in my mite, I said in substance as follows : — " In the difficulties attending us in this life nothing is more precious than the mind of truth inwardly manifested; and it is my earnest desire that in this weighty matter we may be so truly humbled as to be favored with a clear un- derstanding of the mind of truth, and follow it; this would be of more advantage to the Society than any medium not in the clearness of Divine wisdom. The case is difficult to some who have slaves, but if such set aside all self-interest, and come to be weaned from the desire of getting estates, or even from holding them together, when truth requires the contrary, I believe way will so open that they will know how to steer through those difficulties." Many Friends appeared to be deeply bowed under the weight of the work, and manifested much firmness in their love to the cause of truth and universal righteousness on the earth. And though none did openly justify the practice of slave-keeping in general, yet some appeared concerned lest the meeting should go into such measures as might give un- easiness to many brethren, alleging that if Friends patiently continued under the exercise the Lord in his time might open a way for the deliverance of these people. Finding an en- gagement to speak, I said, " My mind is often led to con- sider the purity of the Divine Being, and the justice of his judgments; and herein my soul is covered with awful- ness. I cannot omit to hint of some cases where people have not been treated with the purity of justice, and the event hath been lamentable. Many slaves on this continent are oppressed, and their cries have reached the ears of the Most High. Such are the purity and certainty of his judgments, that he cannot be partial in our favor. In infinite love and goodness he hath opened our understanding from one time to another concerning our duty towards this people, and it is not a time for delay. Should we now be sensible of what he requires of us, and through a respect to the private in- terest of some persons, or through a regard to some friend- ships which do not stand on an immutable foundation, neglect 234 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN to do our duty in firmness and constancy, still waiting for some extraordinary means to bring about their deliverance, God may by terrible things in righteousness answer us in this matter." Many faithful brethren labored with great firmness, and the love of truth in a good degree prevailed. Several who had negroes expressed their desire that a rule might be made to deal with such Friends as offenders who bought slaves in future. To this it was answered that the root of this evil would never be effectually struck at until a thorough search was made in the circumstances of such Friends as kept negroes, with respect to the righteousness of their motives in keeping them, that impartial justice might be ad- ministered throughout. Several Friends expressed their de- sire that a visit might be made to such Friends as kept slaves, and many others said that they believed liberty was the negro's right; to which, at length, no opposition was pub- licly made. A minute vv^as made more full on that subject than any heretofore; and the names of several Friends en- tered who were free to join in a visit to such as kept slaves. CHAPTER VI 1758, 1759 Visit to the Quarterly Meetings in Chester County — Joins Daniel Stanton and John Scarborough in a Visit to such as kept Slaves there — Some Observations on the Conduct which those should maintain v/ho speak in Meetings for Discipline — More Visits to such as kept Slaves, and to Friends near Salem — Account of the Yearly Meeting in the Year 1759, and of the increasing Con- cern in Divers Provinces to Labor against Bujdng and Keeping Slaves — The Yearly Meeting Epistle — Thoughts on the Small- pox spreading, and on Inoculation. LEVENTH of eleventh month, 1758.— This day I set I . out for Concord; the Quarterly Meeting heretofore "^ held there was now, b}^ reason of a great increase of members, divided into two by the agreement of Friends at our last Yearly Meeting. Here I met with our beloved friends Samuel Spavold and Mary Kirby from England, and with Joseph White from Buck's County ; the latter had taken leave of his family in order to go on a religious visit to Friends in England, and, through Divine goodness, we were favored with a strengthening opportunity together. After this meeting I joined with my friends, Daniel Stan- ton and John Scarborough, in visiting Friends who had slaves. At night we had a family meeting at William Trim- ble's, many young people being there ; and it was a precious, reviving opportunity. Next morning we had a comfortable sitting with a sick neighbor, and thence to the burial of the corpse of a Friend at Uwchland Meeting, at which were many people, and it was a time of Divine favor, after which we visited som.e M^ho had slaves. In the evening we had a family meeting at a Friend's house, where the channel of the gospel love was opened, and my mind was com-forted after a hard day's labor. The next day we were at Goshen 235 236 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN Monthly Meeting, and on the i8th attended the Quarterly Meeting at London Grove, it being first held at that place. Here we met again with all the before-mentioned Friends, and had some edifying meetings. Near the conclusion of the meeting for business, Friends were incited to constancy in supporting the testimony of truth, and reminded of the ne- cessity which the disciples of Christ are under to attend principally to his business as he is pleased to open it to us, and to be particularly careful to have our minds redeemicd from the love of wealth, and our outward affairs in as little room as may be, that no temporal concerns may entangle our affections or hinder us from diligently following the dic- tates of truth in laboring to promote the pure spirit of meek- ness and heavenly-mindedness amongst the children of men in these days of calamity and distress, wherein God is visit- ing our land with his just judgments. Each of these Quarterly Meetings was large and sat near eight hours. I had occasion to consider that it is a weighty thing to speak much in large meetings for business, for except our minds are rightly prepared, and we clearly under- stand the case we speak to, instead of forwarding, we hinder business, and make more labor for those on whom the burden of the work is laid. If selfish views or a partial spirit have any room in our minds, we are unfit for the Lord's work; if we have a clear prospect of the business, and proper weight on our mJnds to speak, we should avoid useless apologies and repetitions. Where people are gathered from far, and ad- journing a meeting of business is attended with great diffi- culty, it behoves all to be cautious how they detain a meeting, especially when they have sat six or seven hours, and have a great distance to ride home. After this meeting I rode home. In the beginning of the twelfth month I joined, in company with my friends John Sykes and Daniel Stanton, in visiting such as had slaves. Some whose hearts were rightly exer- cised about them appeared to be glad of our visit, but in some places our v/ay was more difficult. I often saw the necessity of keeping down to that root from vv^hence our concern proceeded, and have cause, in reverent thankfulness, humbly to bow down before the Lord, who was near to me, and preserved my mind in calmness under some sharp con- THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 237 flicts, and begat a spirit of sympathy and tenderness in me towards some who were grievously entangled by the spirit of this world. First month, 1759. — Having found my mind drawn to visit some of the more active members in our Society at Philadel- phia, who had slaves, I met my friend John Churchman there by agreement, and we continued about a week in the city. We visited some that were sick, and some widows and their fam.ilies, and the other part of our time was mostly em- plo3^ed in visiting such as had slaves. It was a time of deep exercise, but looking often to the Lord for his assistance, he in unspeakable kindness favored us with the influence of that spirit which crucifies to the greatness and splendor of this world, and enabling us to go through some heavy labors, in which we found peace. Twenty-fourth of third month, 1759. — After attending our general Spring Meeting at Philadelphia I again joined with John Churchman on a visit to some who had slaves in Phila- delphia, and with thankfulness to our Heavenly Father I m.ay say that Divine love and a true sympathizing tenderness of heart prevailed at times in this service. Having at times perceived a shyness in some Friends of considerable note towards me, I found an engagement in gospel love to pay a visit to one of them ; and as I dwelt under the exercise, I felt a resignedness in my mind to go and tell him privately that I had a desire to have an opportunity with him alone; to this proposal he readily agreed, and then, in the fear of the Lord, things relating to that shyness w^ere searched to the bottom, and we had a large conference, which, I believe was of use to both of us, and I am thankful that way was opened for it. Fourteenth of sixth month. — Having felt drawings in my mind to visit Friends about Salem, and having the appro- bation of our Monthly Meeting, I attended their Quarterly Meeting, and was out seven days, and attended seven meet- ings ; in some of them I was chiefly silent ; in others, through the baptizing power of truth, my heart was enlarged in heavenly love, and I found a near fellowship with the breth- ren and sisters, in the manifold trials attending their Chris- tian progress through this world. 238 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN Seventh month. — I have found an increasing concert! fm my mind to visit some active members in our Society who have slaves, and having no opportunity of the company of such as were named in the minutes of the Yearly Meeting, I went alone to their houses, and, in the fear of the Lord, acquainted them with the exercise I was under; and, thus, sometimes by a few words, I found myself discharged from a heavy burden. After this, our friend John Churchman coming into our province with a view to be at some meetings, and to join again in the visit to those who had slaves, I bore him company in the said visit to some active members, and found inward satisfaction. At our Yearly Meeting this year, we had some weighty seasons, in which the power of truth was largely extended, to the strengthening of the honest-minded. As the epistles which were to be sent to the Yearly Meetings on this con- tinent were read, I observed that in most of them, both this year and the last, it was recom.mended to Friends to labor against buying and keeping slaves, and in some of them the subject was closely treated upon. As this practice hatH long been a heavy exercise to me, and I have often waded through mortifying labors on that account, and at times in some meetings have been almost alone therein, I was humbly bowed in thankfulness in observing the increasing concern in our religious society, and seeing how the Lord was raising up and qualifying servants for his work, not only in this respect, but for promoting the cause of truth in general. This meeting continued near a week. For several days, in the fore part of it, my mind was drawn into a deep inward stillness, and being at times covered with the spirit of sup- plication, my heart was secretly poured out before the Lord. Near the conclusion of the meeting for business, way opened in the pure Sowings of Divine love for me to express what lay upon me, which, as it then arose in my mind, was first to show how deep answers to deep in the hearts of the sincere and upright; though, in their different growths, they may not all have attained to the same clearness in some points relating to our testimony. And I was then led to mention the integrity and constancy of many martyrs who gave their lives for the testimony of Jesus, and yet, in some points, they THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 239 held doctrines distinguishable from some which we hold, that, in all ages, where people were faithful to the light and, understanding which the Most High afforded them, they found acceptance with Him, and though there may be differ- ent ways of thinking amongst us in some particulars, yet, if we mutually keep to that spirit and power which crucifies to the world, which teaches us to be content with things! really needful, and to avoid all superfluities, and give up our hearts to fear and serve the Lord, true unity may still be preserved amongst us; that if those who were at times under sufferings on account of some scruples of conscience kept low and humble, and in their conduct in life manifested a spirit of true charity, it would be more likely to reach the witness in others, and be of more service in the church, than if their sufferings were attended with a contrary spirit and conduct. In this exercise I was drawn into a sympathizing tenderness with the sheep of Christ, however distinguished one from another in this world, and the like disposition ap- peared to spread over others in the meeting. Great is the goodness of the Lord towards his poor creatures. An epistle went forth from this Yearly Meeting which I think good to give a place in this Journal. It is as follows. From the Yearly Meeting held at Philadelphia^ for Pennsylvania and New Jersey^ from the twenty-secojtd day of the ninth month to the twenty-eighth of the same, inclusive., 1759. To THE Quarterly and Monthly Meetings of Friends belonging TO the said Yearly Meeting: — Dearly beloved Friends and Brethren^ — In an awful 'sense of the wisdom and goodness of the Lord our God, whose tender mercies have been continued to us in this land, we affectionately salute you, with sincere and fervent desires that we may reverently regard the dispensations of his provi- dence, and improve under them. The empires and kingdoms of the earth are subject to his almighty power. He is the God of the spirits of all flesh, and deals with his people agreeable to that wisdom, the depth whereof is to us unsearchable. We in these provinces may say, He hath, as a gracious and tender parent, dealt bguntifully with us, even from the days of our fathers. It 240 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN was he who strengthened them to labor through the difHcul« ties attending the improvement of a wilderness, and made way for them in the hearts of the natives, so that by them they were comforted in times of want and distress. It was by the gracious influences of his Holy Spirit that they were disposed to work righteousness, and walk uprightly towards each other, and towards the natives; in life and conver- sation to manifest the excellency of the principles and doc- trines of the Christian religion whereby they retain their esteem and friendship. Whilst they were laboring for the necessaries of life, many of them were fervently engaged to promote piety and virtue in the earth, and to educate their children in the fear of the Lord. If we carefully consider the peaceable measures pursued in the first settlement of land, and that freedom from the deso- lations of wars which for a long time we enjoyed, we shall find ourselves under strong obligations to the Almighty, who, when the earth is so generally polluted with wickedness, gives us a being in a part so signally favored with tran- quillity and plenty, and in which the glad tidings of the gospel of Christ are so freely published that we m.ay justly say with the Psalmist, " What shall we render unto the Lord for all his benefits ? " Our own real good, and the good of our posterity, in some measure depends on the part v^e act, and it nearly con- cerns us to try our foundations impartially. Such are the different rewards of the just and unjust in a future state^ that to attend diligently to the dictates of the spirit of Christ to devote ourselves to his service, and to engage fervently in his cause, during our short stay in this world, is a choice well becom.ing a free, intelligent creature. We shall thus clearly see and consider that the dealings of God with man- kind, in a national capacity, as recorded in Holy Writ, do sufficiently evidence the truth of that saying, * It is right- eousness which exalteth a nation " ; and though he doth not at all times suddenly execute his judgments on a sinful people in this life, yet we see in many instances that when "men follow lying vanities they forsake their own mercies"; and as a proud, selfish spirit prevails and spreads among a people, so partial judgment, oppression, discord, envy, and THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 241 confusions increase, and provinces and kingdoms are made to drink the cup of adversity as a reward of their own doings. Thus the inspired prophet, reasoning with the de- generated Jews, saith, " Thine own wickedness shall correct thee, and thy backsliding shall reprove thee ; know, therefore, that it is an evil thing and bitter that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, and that my fear is not in thee, saith the Lord God of Hosts." (Jeremiah ii. 19.) The God of our fathers, who hath bestowed on us many; benefits, furnished a table for us in the wilderness, and made the deserts and solitary places to rejoice. He doth now mercifully call upon us to serve him more faithfully. We may truly say with the Prophet, " It is his voice which crieth to the city, and men of wisdom see his name. They regard the rod, and Him who hath appointed it." People who look chiefly at things outward too little consider the original cause of the present troubles; but they who fear the Lord and think often upon his name, see and feel that a wrong spirit is spreading amongst the inhabitants of our country; that the hearts of many are waxed fat, and their ears dull of hearing; that the Most High, in his visitations to us, instead of calling, lifteth up his voice and crieth: he crieth to our country, and his voice waxeth louder and louder. In former wars between the English and other na- tions, since the settlement of our provinces, the calamities attending them have fallen chiefly on other places, but now; of late they have reached to our borders; many of our fellow-subjects have suffered on and near our frontiers, some have been slain in battle, some killed in their houses, and some in their fields, some wounded and left in great misery, and others separated from their wives and little children, who have been carried captives among the Indians. We have seen men and women who have been witnesses o£ these scenes of sorrow, and, being reduced to want^ have come to our houses asking relief. It is not long since that many young men in one of these provinces were drafted, in order to be taken as soldiers; some were at that time in great distress, and had occasion to consider that their lives had been too little conformable to the purity and spirituality of that religion which we profess, and found 242 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN themselves too little acquainted with that inward humility, in which true fortitude to endure hardness for the truth's sake is experienced. Many parents were concerned for their children, and in that time of trial were led to consider that their care to get outward treasure for them had been greater than their care for their settlement in that religion whicK erucifieth to the world, and enableth to bear testim.ony to the peaceable government of the Messiah. These troubles are removed, and for a time we are released from them. Let us not forget that " The Most High hath his way in the deep, in clouds, and in thick darkness " ; that it is his voice which crieth to the city and to the country, and O ! that these loud and awakening cries may have a proper effect upon us, that heavier chastisement may not become neces- sary! For though things, as to the outward, may for a short time afford a pleasing prospect, yet, while a selfish spirit, that is not subject to the cross of Christ, continueth to spread and prevail, there can be no long continuance in outward peace and tranquillity. If we desire an inheritance incorruptible, and to be at rest in that state of peace and happiness which ever continues; if we desire in this life to dwell under the favor and protection of that Almighty Being whose habitation is in holiness, whose ways are all equal, and whose anger is now kindled because of our back- slidings, — ^let us then awfully regard these beginnings of his sore judgm.ents, and with abasement and humiliation turn to him v\^hom we have offended. Contending with one equal in strength is an uneasy ex- ercise; but if the Lord is become our enemy, if we persist in contending with him who is om.nipotent, our overthrow will be unavoidable. Do we feel an affectionate regard to posterity? and are we employed to promote their happiness? Do our minds, in things outward, look beyond our own dissolution? and are we contriving for the prosperity of our children after us? Let us then, like wise builders, lay the foundation deep, and by our constant uniform regard to an inv/ard piety and virtue let them see that we really value it. Let us labor in the fear of the Lord, that their innocent minds, while young and tender, may be preserved from corruptions; that THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 243 as they advance in age they may rightly understand their true interest, may consider the uncertainty of temporal things, and, above all, have their hope and confidence firmly settled in the blessing of that Almighty Being who inhabits eternity and preserves and supports the world. In all our cares about worldly treasures, let us steadily bear in mind that riches possessed by children who do not truly serve God are likely to prove snares that may more grievously entangle them in that spirit of selfishness and ex- altation which stands in opposition to real peace and hap- piness, and renders those who submit to the influence of it enemies to the cross of Christ. To keep a watchful eye towards real objects of charity, to visit the poor in their lonesome dwelling-places, to comfort those who, through the dispensations of Divine Providence, are in strait and painful circumstances in this life, and steadily to endeavor to honor God with our substance, from a real sense of the love of Christ influencing our minds, is more likely to bring a blessing to our children, and will afford more satisfaction to a Christian favored with plenty, than an earnest desire to collect much wealth to leave behind us ; for, "here we have no continuing city" ; may we therefore diligently "seek one that is to come, whose builder and maker is God." "Finally, brethren, whatsoever things are true, whatso- ever things are just, whatsoever things are pure, whatsoever things are lovely, whatsoever things are of good report, if there be any virtue, if there be any praise, think on these things, and do them, and the God of peace shall be with you." (Signed by appointment, and on behalf of said meeting.)' Twenty-eighth eleventh month. — This day I attended the Quarterly Meeting in Bucks County. In the meeting of ministers and elders my heart was enlarged in the love of Jesus Christ, and the favor of the Most High was extended to us in that and the ensuing meeting. I had conversation at my lodging with my beloved friend Samuel Eastburn, who expressed a concern to join in a visit to some Friends in that county who .had negroes, and as I had felt a drawing in my mind to the said work, I came 244 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN home and put things in order. On nth of twelfth month I went over the river, and on the next day was at Buckingham Meeting, where, through the descendings of heavenly dew, my mind was comforted and drawn into a near unity with the flock of Jesus Christ. Entering upon this business appeared weighty, and before I left home my mind was often sad, under which exercise I felt at times the Holy Spirit which helps our infirmities, and through which my prayers were at times put up to God in private that he would be pleased to purge me from all selfish- ness, that I might be strengthened to discharge my duty faithfully, how hard soever to the natural part. We pro- ceeded on the visit in a weighty frame of spirit, and went to the houses of the most active members who had negroes throughout the county. Through the goodness of the Lord my mind was preserved in resignation in times of trial, and though the work was hard to nature, yet through the strength of that love which is stronger than death, tenderness of heart was often felt amongst us in our visits, and we parted from several families with greater satisfaction than we expected. We visited Joseph White's family, he being in England; we had also a family-sitting at the house of an elder who bore us company, and were at Makefield on a first day: at all which times my heart was truly thankful to the Lord who was graciously pleased to renew his loving-kindness to us, his poor servants, uniting us together in his work. In the winter of this year, the small-pox being in our town, and many being inoculated, of whom a few died, some things were opened in my mind, which I wrote as follows : — The more fully our lives are conformable to the will of God, the better it is for us; I have looked on the small- pox as a messenger from the Almighty, to be an assistant in the cause of virtue, and to incite us to consider whether we employ our time only in such things as are consistent with perfect wisdom and goodness. Building houses suitable to dwell in, for ourselves and our creatures; preparing cloth- ing suitable for the climate and season, and food convenient^ are all duties incumbent on us. And under these general heads are many branches of business in which we may ven- ture health and life, as necessity may require. THE JOURNAL OF JOFIN WOOLMAN 245 This disease being in a house, and my business calling me to go near it, incites me to consider whether this is a real indispensable duty; whether it is not in conformity to some custom which would be better laid aside, or, whether it does not proceed from too eager a pursuit after some outward treasure. If the business before me springs not from a clear understanding and a regard to that use of things which per- fect wisdom approves, to be brought to a sense of it and stopped in my pursuit is a kindness, for when I proceed to business without somx evidence of duty, I have found by experience that it tends to weakness. If I am so situated that there appears no probability of missing the infection, it tends to make me think whether my manner of life in things outward has nothing in it which may unfit my body to receive this messenger in a way the most favorable to me. Do I use food and drink in no other sort and in no other degree than was designed by Him who gave these creatures for our sustenance? Do I never abuse my body by inordinate labor, striving to accomplish some end which I have unwisely proposed? Do I use action enough in some useful employ, or do I sit too much idle while some persons who labor to support me have too great a share of it? If in any of these things I am deficient, to be incited to consider it is a favor to me. Employment is necessary in social life, and this infection, which often proves mortal, incites me to think whether these social acts of mine are real duties. If I go on a visit to the widows and fatherless, do I go purely on a principle of charity, free from any selfish views? If I go to a religious meeting it puts me on think- ing whether I go in sincerity and in a clear sense of duty, or whether it is not partly in conformity to custom, or partly from a sensible delight which my animal spirits feel in the company of other people, and whether to support my reputation as a religious m.an has no share in it. Do affairs relating to civil society call me near this infec- tion? If I go, it is at the hazard of my health and life, and it becomes me to think seriously whether love to truth and righteousness is the motive of my attending; whether the mannner of proceeding is altogether equitable, or v/hether aught of narrowness, party interest, respect to outward dig- 246 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN nities, names, or distinctions among men, do not stain the beauty of those assemblies, and render it doubtful; in point of duty, whether a disciple of Christ ought to attend as a member united to the body or not. Whenever there are blemishes which for a series of time remain such, that which is a means of stirring us up to look attentively on these blemishes, and to labor according to our capacities, to have health and soundness restored in our country, we may justly account a kindness from our gracious Father, who appointed that means. The care of a wise and good man for his only son is inferior to the regard of the great Parent of the universe for his creatures. He hath the command of all the powers and operations in nature, and " doth not afflict willingly, nor grieve the children of men." Chastisement is intended for instruction, and instruction being received by gentle chastise- ment, greater calamities are prevented. By an earthquake hundreds of houses are sometimes shaken down in a few minutes, multitudes of people perish suddenly, and many more, being crushed and bruised in the rdins of the build- ings, pine away and die in great misery. By the breaking in of enraged merciless armies, flourish- ing countries have been laid waste, great numbers of people have perished in a short time, and many more have been pressed with poverty and grief. By the pestilence, people have died so fast in a city, that, through fear, grief, and confusion, those in health have found great difficulty in burying the dead, even without coffins. By famine, great numbers of people in some places have been brought to the utmost distress, and have pined away from want of the necessaries of life. Thus, when the kind invitations and gentle chastisements of a gracious God have not been attended to, his sore judgments have at times been poured out upon people. While some rules approved in civil society and conform- able to humxan policy, so called, are distinguishable from the purity of truth and righteousness, — while many professing the truth are declining from that ardent love and heavenly- mindedness which was amongst the primitive followers of Jesus Christ, it is time for us to attend diligently to the THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 247 intent of every chastisement, and to consider the most deep and inward design of them. The Most High doth not often speak with, an outward voice to our outward ears, but if we humbly meditate on his perfections, consider that he is perfect wisdom and good- ness, and that to afflict his creatures to no purpose would be utterly averse to his nature, we shall hear and under- stand his language both in his gentle and more heavy chas- tisements, and shall take heed that we do not, in the wisdom; of this world, endeavor to escape his hand by means too powerful for us. Had he endowed men with understanding to prevent this disease (the small-pox) by means which had never proved hurtful nor mortal, such a discovery might be considered as the period of chastisement by this distemper, where that knowledge extended. But as life and health are his gifts, and are not to be disposed of in our own wills, to take upon us by inoculation when in health a disorder of which some die, requires great clearness of knowledge that it is our duty to do so^ CHAPTER Vir 1760 Visit, in Company with Samuel Eastburn, to Long Island, Rhode Island, Boston, etc. — Remarks on the Slave-Trade at New- port ; also on Lotteries — Some Observations on the Island of Nantucket. lOURTH month, 1760. — Having for some time past felt a sympathy in my mind with Friends eastward, I opened my concern in our Monthly Meeting, and, obtaining a certificate, set forward on the 17th of this month, in company with my beloved friend Samuel Eastburn. We had meetings at Woodbridge, Rahway, and Plainfield, and were at their Monthly Meeting of ministers and elders in Rahway. We labored under some discouragement, but through the invisible power of truth our visit was made reviving to the lowly-minded, with whom I felt a near unity of spirit, being much reduced in my mind. We passed on and visited most of the meetings on Long Island. It was my concern from day to day to say neither more nor less than what the spirit of truth opened in me, being jealous over myself lest I should say anything to make my testi- mony look agreeable to that mind in people which is not in pure obedience to the cross of Christ. The spring of the ministry was often low, and through the subjecting power of truth we were kept low with it; from place to place they whose hearts were truly concerned for the cause of Christ appeared to be comforted in our labors, and though it was in general a time of abasement of the creature, yet through his goodness who is a helper of the poor we had some truly edifying seasons both in meet- ings and in families where we tarried ; sometimes we found strength to labor earnestly with the unfaithful, especially 248 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 249 with those whose station in families or in the Society was such that their example had a powerful tendency to open the way for others to go aside from the purity and sound- ness of the blessed truth. At Jericho, on Long Island, I wrote home as follows: — 24th of the fourth month, 1760. Dearly beloved Wife! We are favored with health; have been at sundry meet- ings in East Jersey and on this island. My mind hath been m-uch in an inward, watchful frame since I left thee, greatly desiring that our proceedings may be singly in the will of our Heavenly Father. As the present appearance of things is not joyous, I have been much shut up from outward cheerfulness, remembering that promise, " Then shalt thou delight thyself in the Lord " ; as this from day to day has been revived in my memory, I have considered that his internal presence in our minds is a delight of all others the most pure, and that the honest- hearted not only delight in this, but in the effect of it upon them. He regards the helpless and distressed, and reveals his love to his children under affliction, who delight in beholding his benevolence, and in feeling Divine charity mov- ing in them. Of this I may speak a little, for though since I left you I have often an engaging love and affection to- wards thee and my daughter, and friends about home, and going out at this time, when sickness is so great amongst you, is a trial upon me; yet I often remember there are many widows and fatherless, many who have poor tutors, many who have evil examples before them, and many whose minds are in captivity ; for whose sake my heart is at times moved with compassion, so that I feel my mind resigned to leave you for a season, to exercise that gift which the Lord hath bestowed on me, which though small compared with some, yet in this I rejoice, that I feel love unfeigned to- wards my fellow-creatures. I recommend you to the Al- mighty, who I trust, cares for you, and under a sense of his heavenly love remain. Thy loving husband, J. W. 250 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN We crossed from the east end of Long Island to New London, about thirty miles, in a large open boat; while we were out, the wind rising high, the waves several times beat over us, so that to me it appeared dangerous, but my mind was at that time turned to Him who made and gov- erns the deep, and my life v/as resigned to him; as he was mercifully pleased to preserve us I had fresh occasion to consider every day as a day lent to me, and felt a renewed engagement to devote my time, and all I had, to him who gave it. We had five meetings in Narraganset, and went thence to Newport on Rhode Island. Our gracious Father preserved us in an humble dependence on him through deep exercises that were mortifying to the creaturely will. In several fami- lies in the. country where we lodged, I felt an engagement on my mind to have a conference with them in private, concerning their slaves; and through Divine aid I was favored to give up thereto. Though in this concern I differ from many whose service in travelling is, I believe, greater than mine, yet I do not think hardly of them for omitting it ; I do not repine at having so unpleasant a task assigned me, but look with awfulness to him who appoints to his servants their respective employments, and is good to all who serve him sincerely. We got to Newport in the evening, and on the next day visited two sick persons, with whom we had comfortable sittings, and in the afternoon attended the burial of a Friend. The next day we were at meetings at Newport, in the fore- noon and afternoon ; the spring of the ministry was opened, and strength was given to declare the Word of Life to the people. The day following we went on our journey, but the great number of slaves in these parts, and the continuance of that trade from thence to Guinea, made a deep impression on me, and my cries were often put up to my Heavenly Father in secret, that he would enable me to discharge my duty faith- fully in such way as he might be pleased to point out to me. We took Swansea, Freetown, and Taunton in our way to Boston, where also we had a meeting; our exercise was deep, and the love of truth prevailed, for which I bless the THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 251 tor'd. We went eastward about eighty miles beyond Boston, taking meetings, and were in a good degree preserved in an humble dependence on that arm which drew us out; and though we had some hard labor with the disobedient, by lay- ing things home and close to such as were stout against the truth, yet through the goodness of God we had at times to partake of heavenly comfort with those who were meek, and were often favored to part with Friends in the nearness of true gospel fellowship. We returned to Boston and had another comfortable opportunity with Friends there, and thence rode back a day's journey eastward of Boston. Our guide being a heavy man, and the weather hot, my companion and I expressed our freedom to go on without him, to whicfi he consented, and we respectfully took our leave of him; this we did as believing the journey would have been hard to him and his horse. In visiting the meetings in those parts we were meas- urably baptized into a feeling of the state of the Society, and in bowedness of spirit went to the Yearly Meeting at Newport, where we met with John Storer from England, Elizabeth Shipley, Ann Gaunt, Hannah Foster, and Mercy Redman, from our parts, all ministers of the gospel, of whose company I was glad. Understanding that a large number of slaves had been imported from Africa into that town and were then on sale by a member of our Society, my appetite failed, and I grew outwardly weak, and had a feeling of the condition of Habakkuk, as thus expressed, " When I heard, my belly trembled, my lips quivered, I trem- bled in myself, that I might rest in the day of trouble." I had many cogitations, and was sorely distressed. I was desirous that Friends might petition the Legislature to use their endeavors to discourage the future importation of slaves, for I saw that this trade was a great evil, and tended to multiply troubles, and to bring distresses on the people for whose welfare my heart was deeply concerned. But I per- ceived several difficulties in regard to petitioning, and such was the exercise of my mind that I thought of endeavoring to get an opportunity to speak a few words in the House of Ai.ssembly, then sitting in town. This exercise came upon me in the afternoon on the 252 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN second day of the Yearly Meeting, and on going to bed I got no sleep till my mind was wholly resigned thereto. In the morning I inquired of a Friend how long the Assembly was likely to continue sitting, who told me it was expected to be prorogued that day or the next. As I was desirous to attend the business of the meeting, and perceived the Assem- bly was likely to separate before the business was over, after considerable exercise, humbly seeking to the Lord for in- struction, my mind settled to attend on the business of the meeting; on the last day of which I had prepared a short essay of a petition to be presented to the Legislature, if way opened. And being informed that there were some appointed by that Yearly Meeting to speak with those in authority on cases relating to the Society, I opened my mind to several of them, and showed them the essay I had made, and after- wards I opened the case in the meeting for business, in sub- stance as follows: — " I have been under a concern for some time on account of the great number of slaves which are imported into this colony. I am aware that it is a tender point to speak to, but apprehend I am not clear in the sight of Heaven with- out doing so. I have prepared an essay of a petition tO' be presented to the Legislature, if way open; and what I have to propose to this meeting is that some Friends may be named to withdraw and look over it, and report whether they believe it suitable to be read in the meeting. If they should think well of reading it, it will remain for the meeting to consider whether to take any further notice of it, as a meet- ing, or not." After a short conference some Friends went out, and, looking over it, expressed their willingness to have it read, which being done, many expressed their unity with the proposal, and some signified that to have the sub- jects of the petition enlarged upon, and signed out of meet- ing by such as were free, would be more suitable than to do it there. Though I expected at first that if it was done it would be in that way, yet such was the exercise of my mind that to move it in the hearing of Friends when assembled appeared to me as a duty, for my heart yearned towards the inhabitants of these parts, believing that by this trade there had been an increase of inquietude amongst them, and way THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 253 had been made for the spreading of a spirit opposite to that meekness and humility which is a sure resting-place for the soul ; and that the continuance of this trade would not only- render their healing more difficult, but would increase their malady. Having proceeded thus far, I felt easy to leave the essay amongst Friends, for them to proceed in it as they believed best. And now an exercise revived in my mind in relation to lotteries, which were common in those parts. I had men- tioned the subject in a former sitting of this meeting, when arguments were used in favor of Friends being held excused who were only concerned in such lotteries as were agreeable to law. And now, on moving it again, it was opposed as before ; but the hearts of some solid Friends appeared to be united to discourage the practice amongst their members, and the matter was zealously handled by some on both sides. In this debate it appeared very clear to me that the spirit of lotteries was a spirit of selfishness, which tended to confuse and darken the understanding, and that pleading for it in our meetings, which were set apart for the Lord's work, was not right. In the heat of zeal, I made reply to what an ancient Friend said, and when I sat down I saw that my words were not enough seasoned with charity. After this I spoke no more on the subject. At l,ength a minute was made, a copy of which was to be sent to their several Quar- terly Meetings, inciting Friends to labor to discourage the practice amongst all professing with us. Some time after this minute was made I remained uneasy with the manner of my speaking to the ancient Friend, and could not see my way clear to conceal my uneasiness, though I was concerned that I might say nothing to weaken the cause in which I had labored. After some close exercise and hearty repentence for not having attended closely to the safe guide, I stood up, and, reciting the passage, ac- quainted Friends that though I durst not go from what I had said as to the matter, yet I was uneasy with the man- ner of my speaking, believing milder language would have been better. As this was uttered in some degree of crea- turely abasement after a warm debate, it appeared to have a good savor amongst us. 254 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN The Yearly Meeting being now over, there yet remained on my mind a secret though heavy exercise, in regard to some leading active miembers about Newport, who were in the practice of keeping slaves. This I mentioned to two ancient Friends who came out of the country, and proposed to them, if way opened, to have some conversation with those members. One of them and I, having consulted one of the most noted elders who had slaves, he, in a respectful manner, encouraged me to proceed to clear myself of what lay upon me. Near the beginning of the Yearly Meeting, I had had a private conference with this said elder and his wife, concerning their slaves, so that the way seemed clear to me to advise with him about the m.anner of proceeding. I told him I was free to have a conference with them all together in a private house; or if he thought they would take it unkind to be asked to come together, and to be spoken with in the hearing of one another, I was free to spend soms time amongst them, and to visit them all in their own houses. He expressed his liking to the first proposal, not doubting their willingness to come together; and, as I proposed a visit to only ministers, elders, and overseers, he named some others whom he desired might also be present. A careful messenger being wanted to acquaint them in a proper man- ner, he offered to go to all their houses, to open the matter to them, — and did so. About the eighth hour the next morning we met in the meeting-house chamber, the last- mentioned country Friend, my companion, and John Storer being with us. After a short time of retirement, I acquainted them with the steps I had taken in procuring that meeting, and opened the concern I was under, and we then proceeded' to a free conference upon the subject. My exercise was heavy, and I was deeply bowed in spirit before the Lord, who was pleased to favor with the seasoning virtue of truth, which wrought a tenderness amongst us; and the subject was mutually handled in a calm and peaceable spirit. At length, feeling my mind released from the burden which I had been under, I took my leave of them in a good degree of satis- faction; and by the tenderness they manifested in regard to the practice, and the concern several of them expressed in relation to the manner of disposing of their negroes after THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 255 tJieir decease, I believed that a good exercise was spreading amongst them ; and I am humbly thankful to God, who sup- ported my mind and preserved me in a good degree of resignation through these trials. Thou who sometimes travellest in the work of the minis- try, and art made very welcome by thy friends, seest many tokens of their satisfaction in having thee for their guest. It is good for thee to dwell deep, that thou mayest feel and understand the spirits of people. If we believe truth points towards a conference on some subjects in a private way, it is needful for us to take heed that their kindness, their free- dom, and affability do not hinder us from the Lord's work, I have experienced that, in the midst of kindness and smooth conduct, to speak close and home to them who entertain us, on points that relate to outward interest, is hard labor. Sometimes, when I have felt truth lead towards it, I have found myself disqualified by a superficial friendship ; and as the sense thereof hath abased me, and my cries have been to the Lord, so I have been humbled and made content to appear weak, or as a fool for his sake; and thus a door hath been opened to enter upon it. To attempt to do. the Lord's work in our own way, and to speak of that which is the burden of the Word, in a way easy to the natural part, doth not reach the bottom of the disorder. To see the failings of our friends, and think hard of them, without opening that which we ought to open, and still carry a face of friendship, tends to undermine the foundation of true unity. The office of a minister of Christ is weighty. And they who now go forth as watchmen have need to be steadily on their guard against the snares of prosperity and an outside friendship. After the Yearly Meeting we were at meetings at New- town, Cushnet, Long Plain, Rochester, and Dartmouth. From thence we sailed for Nantucket, in company with Ann Gaunt, Mercy Redman, and several other Friends. The wind being slack we only reached Tarpawling Cove the first day; where, going on shore, we found room in a public- house, and beds for a few of us, — the rest slept on the floor. We went on board again about break of day, and though the wind was small, we were favored to come within about four miles of Nantucket; and then about ten of us got into 256 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN our toat and rowed to the harbor before dark; a large boat went off and brought in the rest of the passengers about midnight. The next day but one was their Yearly Meeting, which held four days, the last of which was their Monthly Meeting for business. We had a laborious time amongst them; our minds were closely exercised, and I believe it was a time of great searching of heart. The longer I was on the Island the more I became sensible that there was a considerable number of valuable Friends there, though an evil spirit, tending to strife, had been at work amongst them. I was cautious of making any visits except as my mind was particularly drawn to them; and in that way we had some sittings in Friends' houses, where the heavenly wing was -at times spread over us, to our mutual comfort. My beloved companion had very acceptable service on this island. When meeting was over we all agreed to sail the next day if the weather was suitable and we were well ; and being called up the latter part of the night, about fifty of us went on board a vessel; but, the wind changing, the seamen thought best to stay in the harbor till it altered, so we returned on shore. Feeling clear as to any further visits, I spent my time in my chamber, chiefly alone; and after some hours, my heart being filled with the spirit of supplica- tion, miy prayers and tears were poured out before my Heav- enly Father for his help and instruction in the manifold difficulties which attended me in life. While I was waiting upon the Lord, there came a m.essenger from the women Friends who lodged at another house, desiring to confer with us about appointing a meeting, which to me appeared weighty, as we had been at so many before; but after a short con- ference, and advising with some elderly Friends, a meeting was appointed, in which the Friend who first moved it, and who had been much shut up before, was largely opened in the love of the gospel. The next morning about break of day going again on board the vessel, we reached Falmouth on the Main before night, where our horses being brought, we proceeded towards Sandwich Quarterly Meeting. Being two days in going to Nantucket, and having been there once before, I observed many shoals in their bay, which make sailing more dangerous, especially in stormy nights; THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 257 also, that a great shoal, which encloses their harbor, prevents the entrance of sloops except when the tide is up. Waiting without for the rising of the tide is sometimes hazardous in storms, and by waiting within they sometimes miss a fair wind. I took notice that there was on that small island a great number of inhabitants, and the soil not very fertile, the timber being so gone that for vessels, fences, and firewood, they depend chiefly on buying from the Main, for the cost whereof, with most of their other expenses, they depend principally upon the whale fishery. I considered that as towns grew larger, and lands near navigable waters were more cleared, it would require more labor to get timber and wood. I understood that the whales, being much hunted and sometimes wounded and not killed, grow more shy and difficult to come at. I considered that the formation of the earth, the seas, the islands, bays, and rivers, the motions of the winds, and great waters, which cause bars and shoals in particular places, were all the works of Him who is per- fect wisdom and goodness; and as people attend to his heavenly instruction, and put their trust in him, he provides for them in all parts where he gives them a being; and as in this visit to these people I felt a strong desire for their firm establishment on the sure foundation, besides what was said more publicly, I was concerned to speak with the women Friends in their Monthly Meeting of business, many being present, and in the fresh spring of pure love to open before them the advantage, both inwardly and out- wardly, of attending singly to the pure guidance of the Holy Spirit, and therein to educate their children in true humility and the disuse of all superfluities. I reminded them of the difficulties their husbands and sons were frequently exposed to at sea, and that the more plain and simple their way of living was the less need there would be of running great hazards to support them. I also encouraged the young women to continue their neat, decent way of attending them- selves on the affairs of the house; showing, as the way opened, that where people were truly humble, used themselves to business, and were content with a plain way of life, they had ever had more true peace and calmness of mind than they who, aspiring to greatness and outward show, have grasped 9 HC— Vol. 1 258 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN hard for an income to support themselves therein. And as I observed they had so few or no slaves, I had to encourage them to be content without them, making mention of the numerous troubles and vexations which frequently attended the minds of the people who depend on slaves to do their labor. We attended the Quarterly Meeting at Sandwich, in com- pany with Ann Gaunt and Mercy Redman, which was pre- ceded by a Monthly Meeting, and in the whole held three days. We were in various ways exercised amongst them, in gospel love, according to the several gifts bestowed on us, and were at times overshadowed with the virtue of truth, to the comfort of the sincere and stirring up of the negligent. Here we parted with Ann and Mercy, and went to Rhode Island, taking one meeting in our way, which was a satis- factory time. Reaching Newport the evening before their Quarterly Meeting, we attended it, and after that had a meeting with our young people, separated from those of other societies. We went through much labor in this town; and now, in taking leave of it, though I felt close inward ex- ercise to the last, I found inward peace, and was in some degree comforted in a belief that a good number remiain in that place who retain a sense of truth, and that there are some young people attentive to the voice of the Heavenly Shepherd. The last meeting, in which Friends from the several parts of the quarter came together, was a select meeting, and through the renewed manifestation of the Father's love the hearts of the sincere were united together. The poverty of spirit and inward weakness, with which I was much tried the fore part of this journey, has of late appeared to me a dispensation of kindness. Appointing meetings never appeared more weighty to me, and I was led in-to a deep search, whether in all things my mind was re- signed to the will of God; often querying with myself what should be the cause of such inward poverty, and greatly desiring that no secret reserve in my heart might hinder my access to the Divine fountain. In these humbling times I was made watchful, and excited to attend to the secret movings of the heavenly principle in my mind, which pre- pared the way to some duties that in more easy and pros- THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 259 perous times as to the outward, I believe I should have been in danger of omitting. From Newport we went to Greenwich, Shanticut, and Warwick, and were helped to labor amongst Friends in the love of our gracious Redeemer. Afterwards, accompanied by our friend John Casey from Newport, we rode through Con- necticut to Oblong, visited the meetings in those parts, and thence proceeded to the Quarterly Meeting at Ryewoods. Through the gracious extendings of Divine help, we had some seasoning opportunities in those places. We also visited Friends at New York and Flushing, and thence to Rahway. Here our roads parting, I took leave of my be- loved companion and true yokemate Samuel Eastburn, and reached home the loth of eighth month, where I found my family well. For the favors and protection of the Lord, both inward and outward, extended to me in this journey, my heart is humbled in grateful acknowledgments, and I find renewed desires to dwell and walk in resignedness be- fore him. CHAPTER VIII 1761, 1762 Visits Pennsylvania, Shrewsbury, and Squan — Publishes the Second Part of his Considerations on keeping Negroes — The Grounds of his appearing in some Respects singular in his Dress — Visit to the Families of Friends of Ancocas and Mount Holly Meet- ings— Visits to the Indians at Wehaloosing on the River Susquehanna. "AVING felt my mind drawn towards a visit to a few meetings in Pennsylvania, I was very desirous to be rightly instructed as to the time of setting off. On the loth of the fifth month, 1761, being the first day of the week, I went to Haddonfield Meeting, concluding to seek for heavenly instruction, and come home, or go on as I might then believe best for me, and there through the springing up of pure love I felt encouragement, and so crossed the river. In this visit I was at two quarterly and three monthly meetings, and in the love of truth I felt my way open to labor with some noted Friends who kept negroes. As I was favored to keep to the root, and endeavor to discharge what I believed was required of me, I found inward peace therein, from time to time, and thankfulness of heart to the Lord, who was graciously pleased to be a guide to me. Eighth month, 1761. — Having felt drawings in my mind to visit Friends in and about Shrewsbury, I went there, and was at their Monthly Meeting, and their first-day meeting; I had also a meeting at Squan, and another at Squanquam, and, as way opened, had conversation with some noted Friends concerning their slaves. I returned home in a thankful sense of the goodness of the Lord. From the concern I felt growing in me for some years, I wrote part the second of a work entitled " Considerations on keeping Negroes," which was printed this year, 1762. 260 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 261 When the overseers of the press had done with it, they offered to get a number printed, to be paid for out of the Yearly Meeting's stock, to be given away ; but I being most easy to publish it at my own expense, and offering my reasons, they appeared satisfied. This stock is the contribution of the members of our re- ligious society in general, among whom are some who keep negroes, and, being inclined to continue them in slavery, are not likely to be satisfied with such books being spread among a people, especially at their own expense, many of whose slaves are taught to read, and such, receiving them as a gift, often conceal them. But as they who make a purchase generally buy that which they have a mind for, I be- lieved it best to sell them, expecting by that means they would more generally be read with attention. Adver- tisements were signed by order of the overseers of the press, and directed to be read in the Monthly Meetings of business within our own Yearly Meeting, informing where the books were, and that the price was no more than the cost of printing and binding them. Many were taken off in our parts; some I sent to Virginia, some to New York, some to my acquaintance at Newport, and some I kept, in- tending to give part of them away, where there appeared a prospect of service. In my youth I was used to hard labor, and though I was m.iddling healthy, yet my nature was not fitted to endure so much as many others. Being often weary, I was pre- pared to sympathize with those whose circumstances in life, as free men, required constant labor to answer the demands of their creditors, as well as with others under oppression. In the uneasiness of body which I have many times felt by too much labor, not as a forced but a voluntary oppression, I have often been excited to think on the original cause of that oppression which is imposed on many in the world. The latter part of the time wherein I labored on our plantation, my heart, through the fresh visitations of heavenly love, being often tender, and my leisure time being frequently spent in reading the life and doctrines of our blessed Re- deemer, the account of the sufferings of martyrs, and the history of the first rise of our Society, a belief was grad- 262 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN ualiy settled in my mind, that if such as had great estates generally lived in that humility and plainness which belong to a Christian life, and laid much easier rents and interests on their lands and moneys, and thus led the way to a right use of things, so great a number of people might be em- ployed in things useful, that labor both for men and other creatures would need to be no more than an agreeable em- ploy, and divers branches of business, which serve chiefly to please the natural inclinations of our minds, and which at present seem necessary to circulate that v/ealth which some gather, might, in this way of pure wisdom, be dis- continued. As I have thus considered these things, a query at times hath arisen: Do I, in all my proceedings, keep to that use of things which is agreeable to universal righteous- ness ? And then there hath some degree of sadness at times eome over me, because I accustomed myself to some things which have occasioned more labor than I believe Divine wisdom intended for us. From my early acquaintance with truth I have often felt an inward distress, occasioned by the striving of a spirit in me against the operation of the heavenly principle; and in this state I have been affected with a sense of my own wretchedness, and in a mourning condition have felt earnest longings for that Divine help which brings the soul into true liberty. Sometimes, on retiring into private places, the spirit of supplication hath been given me, and under a heavenly covering I have asked my gracious Father to give me a heart in all things resigned to the direction of his wisdom; in uttering language like this, the thought of my wearing hats and garments dyed with a dye hurtful to them, has made lasting impression on me. In visiting people of note in the Society who had slaves, and laboring with them in brotherly love on that account, I have seen, and the sight has affected me, that a conformity to some customs distinguishable from pure wisdom has en- tangled many, and that the desire of gain to support these ©ustoms has greatly opposed the work of truth. Sometimes when the prospect of the work before me has been such that in bowedness of spirit I have been drawn into retired places, and have besought the Lord with tears that he would take THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 263 me wholly under his direction, and show me the way in which I ought to walk, it hath revived with strength of con- viction that if I would be his faithful servant I must in all things attend to his wisdom, and be teachable, and so cease from all customs contrary thereto, however used among re- ligious people. As he is the perfection of power, of wisdom, and of good- ness, so I believe he hath provided that so much labor shall be necessary for men's support in this world as would, being rightly divided, be a suitable employment of their time; and that we cannot go into superfluities, or grasp after wealth in a way contrary to his wisdom, without having connection with some degree of oppression, and with that spirit which leads to self-exaltation and strife, and which frequently brings calamities on countries by parties contending about their claims. Being thus fully convinced, and feeling an increasing de- sire to live in the spirit of peace, I have often been sorrow- fully affected with thinking on the unquiet spirit in which wars are generally carried on, and with the miseries of many of my fellow-creatures engaged therein; some suddenly de- stroyed ; some wounded, and after much pain remaining crip- ples; some deprived of all their outward substance and re- duced to want; and some carried into captivity. Thinking often on these things, the use of hats and garments dyed with a dye hurtful to them, and wearing more clothes in summ.er than are useful, grew more uneasy to m^e, believing them to be customs which have not their foundation in pure wisdom. The apprehension of being singular from my be- loved friends was a strait upon me, and thus I continued in the use of some things contrary to my judgment. On the 31st of fifth month, 1761, I was taken ill of a fever, and after it had continued near a week I was in great distress of body. One day there was a cry raised in me that I might understand the cause of my affliction, and im- prove under it, and my conformity to some customs which I believed were not right was brought to my remembrance. In the continuance of this exercise I felt all the powers in me yield themselves up into the hands of Him who gave me being, and was made thankful that he had taken hold of me 264 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN by his chastisements. Feeling the necessity of fttftH^ puri- fying, there was now no desire in me for health until the de:sign of my correction was answered. Thus I lay in abase- ment and brokenness of spirit, and as I felt a sinking down into a calm resignation, so I felt, as in an instant, an inward healing in my nature, and from that time forward 1 grew better. Though my mind was thus settled in relation to hurtful dyes, I felt easy to wear m.y garments heretofore made, and continued to do so about nine months. Then I thought of getting a hat the natural color of the fur, but the apprehen- sion of being looked upon as one affecting singularity felt uneasy to me. Here I had occasion to consider that things, though small in themselves, being clearly enjoined by Divine authority, become great things to us; and I trusted that the Lord would support me in the trials that might attend singu- larity, so long as singularity was only for his sake. On this account I was under close exercise of mind in the time of our General Spring Meeting, 1762, greatly desiring to be rightly directed; when, being deeply bowed in spirit before the Lord, I was made willing to submit to what I appre- hended was required of me, and when I returned home got a hat of the natural color of the fur. In attending meetings this singularity was a trial to me, and more especially at this time, as white hats were used by some who were fond of following the changeable modes of dress, and as some Friends who knew not from what motives I wore it grew shy of me, I felt my way for a time shut up in the exercise of the ministry. In this condition, my mind being turned toward my Heavenly Father with fervent cries that I might be preserved to walk before him in the meekness of wisdom, my heart was often tender in meetings, and I felt an inward consolation which to me was very precious under these difficulties. I had several dyed garments fit for use which I believed it best to wear till I had occasion for new ones. Some Friends were apprehensive that my wearing such a hat savored of an affected singularity; those who spoke with me in a friendly way I generally informed, in a few words, that I believed my wearing it was not in my own will. I had at THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 26S times been sensible that a superficial friendship had been dangerous to me; and many Friends being now uneasy with me, I had an inclination to acquaint some with the manner of my being led into these things ; yet upon a deeper thought I was for a time most easy to omit it, believing the present dispensation was profitable, and trusting that if I kept my place the Lord in his own time would open the hearts of Friends towards me. I have since had cause to admire his goodness and loving-kindness in leading about and instruct- ing me, and in opening and enlarging my heart in some of our meetings. In the eleventh month this year, feeling an engagement of mind to visit som.e families in Mansfield, I joined my beloved friend Benjamin Jones, and we spent a few days together in that service. In the second month, 1763, I joined, in com- pany with Elizabeth Smith and Mary Noble, in a visit to the families of Friends at Ancocas. In both these visits, through the baptizing power of truth, the sincere laboreris were often comforted, and the hearts of Friends opened to receive us. In the fourth month following, I accompanied some Friends in a visit to the families of Friends in Mount Holly; during this visit my mind was often drawn into an inward awfulness, wherein strong desires were raised for the everlasting welfare of my fellow-creatures, and through the kindness of our Heavenly Father our hearts were at times enlarged, and Friends were invited, in the flowings of Divine love, to attend to that which would settle them on the sure foundation. Having for many years felt love in my heart towards the natives of this land who dwell far back in the wilderness, whose ancestors were formerly the owners and possessors of the land where we dwell, and who for a small considera- tion assigned their inheritance to us, and being at Phila- delphia in the 8th month, 1761, on a visit to som^ Friends who had slaves, I fell in company with some of those natives who lived on the east branch of the river Susquehanna, at an Indian town called Wehaloosing, two hundred miles from Philadelphia. In conversation with them by an interpr^er, as also by observations on their countenances and coisiuGt, I believed some of them were measurably acquainted with 266 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN that Divine power which subjects the rough and f reward will of the creature. At times I felt inward drawings towards a visit to that place, which I mentioned to none except my dear wife until it came to some ripeness. In the winter of 1762 I laid my prospects before my friends at our Monthly and Quarterly, and afterwards at our General Spring Meet- ing; and having the unity of Friends, and being thoughtful about an Indian pilot, there came a man and three women from a little beyond that town to Philadelphia on business. Being informed thereof by letter, I met them in town in the 5th month, 1763; and after some conversation, finding they were sober people, I, with the concurrence of Friends in that place, agreed to join them as companions in their return, and we appointed to meet at Samuel Foulk's, at Richland, in Bucks County, on the 7th of sixth month. Now, as this ■/isit felt weighty, and was performed at a time when travel- ling appeared perilous, so the dispensations of Divine Prov- idence in preparing my mind for it have been memorable, and I believe it good for me to give some account thereof. After I had given up to go, the thoughts of the journey were often attended v/ith unusual sadness; at which times my heart v/as frequently turned to the Lord with inward breathings for his heavenly support, that I might not fail to follow him wheresoever he might lead me. Being at our youth's meeting at Chesterfield, about a week before the time I expected to set off, I was there led to speak on that prayer of our Redeemer to the Father: "I pray not that thou shouldest take them out of the world, but that thou shouldest keep them from the evil." And in attending to the pure openings of truth, I had to mention what he elsewhere said to his Father : " I knov/ that thou hearest me at all times " ; so, as some of his followers kept their places, and as his prayer was granted, it followed necessarily that they were kept from evil; and as some of those met with great hardships and afflictions in this world, and at last suffered death by cruel men, so it appears- that whatsoever befalls men while they live in pure obedience to God certainly works for their good, and may not be considered an evil as it re- lates to them. As I spake on this subject my heart was much tendered, and great awfulness came over me. On the THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 267 first day of the week, being at our own afternoon meeting, and my heart being enlarged in love> I was led to speak on the care and protection of the Lord over his people, and to make mention of that passage where a band of Syrians^ who were endeavoring to take captive the prophet> were disap- pointed; and how the Psalmist said, "The angel of the Lord encampeth round about them that fear him." Thus, in true love and tenderness, I parted from Friends, expecting the next morning to proceed on my journey. Being weary I went early to bed. After I had been asleep a short time I was awoke by a man calling at my door, and inviting me to meet some Friends at a public-house in our town, who came from Philadelphia so late that Friends were generally gone to bed. These Friends informed me that an express had arrived the last morning from Pittsburg, and brought news that the Indians had taken a fort from the English westward, and had slain and scalped some English people near the said Pittsburg, and in divers places. Some elderly Friends in Philadelphia, knowing the time of my intending to set off, had conferred together, and thought good to inform me of these things before I left home, that I might con- sider them and proceed as I believed best. Going to bed again, I told not my wife till morning. My heart was turned to the Lord for his heavenly instruction; and it was an humbling time to me. When I told my dear wife, she ap- peared to be deeply concerned about it; but in a few hours' time my mind became settled in a belief that it was my duty to proceed on my journey, and she bore it with a good degree of resignation. In this conflict of spirit there were great searchings of heart and strong cries to the Lord, that no motion might in the least degree be attended to but that of the pure spirit of truth. The subjects before mentioned, on which I had so lately spoken in public, were now fresh before me, and I was brought inwardly to commit myself to the Lord, to be dis- posed of as he saw best. I took leave of my family and neighbors in much bowedness of spirit, and went to our Monthly Meeting at Burlington. After taking leave of Friends there, I crossed the river, accompanied by my friends Israel and John Pemberton; and parting the next morning 268 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN with Israel, John bore me company to Samuel Foulk's, where I met the before-mentioned Indians; and we were glad to see each other. Here my friend Benjamin Parvin met me, and proposed joining me as a companion, — we had before exchanged some letters on the subject, — and now I had a sharp trial on his account ; for, as the journey appeared per- ilous, I thought if he went chiefly to bear me company, and we should be taken captive, my having been the m.eans of drawing him into these difficulties would add to my own afflictions; so I told him my mind freely, and let him know that I was resigned to go alone ; but after all, if he really be- lieved it to be his duty to go on, I believed his company would be very comfortable to me. It was, indeed, a time of deep exercise, and Benjamin appeared to be so fastened to the visit that he could not be easy to leave me; so we went on, ac- companied by our friends John Pemberton and William Lightfoot of Pikeland. We lodged at Bethlehem, and there parting with John, William and we went forward on the 9th of the sixth months and got lodging on the floor of a house, about five miles from Fort Allen. Here we parted with William., and at this place we met with an Indian trader lately come from Wyoming. In conversation with him, I perceived that many white people often sell rum to the Indians, which I believe is a great evil. In the first place, they are thereby deprived of the use of reason, and their spirits being violently agitated, quarrels often arise which end in mischief, and the bitterness and resentment occasioned hereby are frequently of long continuance. Again, their skins and furs, gotten through much fatigue and hard travels in hunting, with which they intended to buy clothing, they often sell at a low rate for more rum, when they become intoxi- cated; and afterward, when they suffer for want of the necessaries of life, are angry with those who, for the sake of gain, took advantage of their weakness. Their chiefs have often complained of this in their treaties with the English. Where cunning people pass counterfeits and impose on others that which is good for nothing, it is considered as wicked- ness; but for the sake of gain to sell that which we know does people harm, and which often works their ruin, mani- fests a hardened and corrupt hearty and is an evil which de* THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 269 mands the care of all true lovers of virtue to suppress. While my mind this evening was thus employed, I also remembered that the people on the frontiers, among whom this evil is too common, are often poor ; and that they venture to the outside of a colony in order to live more independently of the wealthy, who often set high rents on their land. I was re- newedly confirmed in a belief, that if all our inhabitants lived according to sound wisdom, laboring to promote universal love and righteousness, and ceased from every inordinate desire after wealth, and from all customs which are tinctured with luxury, the way would be easy for our inhabitants, though they might be much more numerous than at present, to live comfortably on honest employments, without the temptation they are so often under of being drawn into schemes to make settlements on lands which have not been purchased of the Indians, or of applying to that wicked prac- tice of selling rum to them. Tenth of sixth month. — We set out early this morning and crossed the western branch of Delaware, called the Great Lehie, near Fort Allen. The water being high, we went over in a canoe. Here we met an Indian, had friendly conver- sation with him, and gave him some biscuit; and he, having killed a deer, gave some of it to the Indians with us. After travelling some miles, we met several Indian men and women with a cow and horse, and some household goods, who were lately come from their dwelling at Wyoming, and were going to settle at another place. We made them some small pres- ents, and, as some of them understood English, I told them my motive for coming into their country, with which they appeared satisfied. One of our guides talking awhile with an ancient woman concerning us, the poor old woman came to my companion and me and took her leave of us with an appearance of sincere affection. We pitched our tent near the banks of the same river, having labored hard in crossing some of those mountains called the Blue Ridge. The rough- ness of the stones and the cavities between them, with the steepness of the hills, made it appear dangerous. But we were preserved in safety, through the kindness of Him whose works in these mountainous deserts appeared awful, and towards whom m-y heart was turned during this day's travel 270 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN Near our tent, on the sides of large trees peeled for that purpose, were various representations of men going to and returning from the wars, and of some being killed in battle. This was a path heretofore used by warriors, and as I walked about viewing those Indian histories, which were painted mostly in red or black, and thinking on the innumerable afflictions which the proud, fierce spirit produceth in the world, also on the toils and fatigues of warriors in travelling over mountains and deserts; on their miseries and distresses when far from home and wounded by their enemies ; of their bruises and great weariness in chasing one another over the rocks and mountains; of the restless, unquiet state of mind of those who live in this spirit, and of the hatred which mutually grows up in the minds of their children, — ^the desire to cherish the spirit of love and peace among these people arose very fresh in me. This was the first night that we lodged in the woods, and being wet with travelling in the rain, as were also our blankets, the ground, our tent, and the bushes under which we purposed to lay, all looked discour- aging; but I believed that it was the Lord who had thus far brought me forward, and that he would dispose of me as he saw good, and so I felt easy. We kindled a fire, with our tent open to it, then laid some bushes next the ground, and put our blankets upon them for our bed, and, lying down, got some sleep. In the morning, feeling a little unwell, I went into the river; the water was cold, but soon after I felt fresh and well. About eight o'clock we set forward and crossed a high mountain supposed to be upward of four miles over, the north side being the steepest. About noon we were overtaken by one of the Moravian brethren going to Weha- loosing, and an Indian man with him who could talk English ; and we being together while our horses ate grass had some friendly conversation; but they, travelling faster than we, soon left us. This Moravian, I understood, has this spring 'Spent some time at Wehaloosing, and was invited by some of the Indians to come again. Twelfth of sixth month being the first of the week and a rainy day, we continued in our tent, and I was led to think on the nature of the exercise which hath attended me. Love was the first motion, and thence a concern arose to spend THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 271 some time with the Indians, that I might feel and understand their life and the spirit they live in, if haply I might receive some instruction from them, or they might be in any degree helped forward by my following the leadings of truth among them ; and as it pleased the Lord to make way for m.y going at a time when the troubles of war were increasing, and when, by reason of much wet weather, travelling was more difficult than usual at that season, I looked upon is as a more favorable opportunity to season my mind, and to bring me into a nearer sympathy with them. As mine eye was to the great Father of Mercies, humbly desiring to learn his will concerning me, I was made quiet and content. Our guide's horse strayed, though hoppled, in the night, and after searching some time for him his footsteps were discovered in the path going back, whereupon my kind com- panion went off in the rain, and after about seven hours returned with him. Here we lodged again, tying up our horses before we went to bed, and loosing them to feed about break of day. Thirteenth of sixth month. — The sun appearing, we set for- ward, and as I rode over the barren hills my meditations were on the alterations in the circumstances of the natives of this land since the coming in of the English. The lands near the sea are conveniently situated for fishing; the lands near the rivers, where the tides flow, and some above, are in many places fertile, and not mountainous, while the changing of the tides makes passing up and down easy with any kind of traffic. The natives have In some places, for trifling considerations, sold their inheritance so favorably situated, and In other places have been driven back by superior force; their way of clothing themselves is also altered from what it was, and they being far removed from us have to pass over mountains, swamps, and barren deserts, so that travelling Is very troublesome in bringing their skins and furs to trade with us. By the extension of English set- tlements, and partly by the increase of English hunters, the wild beasts on which the natives chiefly depend for subsis- tence are not so plentiful as they were, and people too often, for the sake of gain, induce them to waste their skins and 272 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN furs in purchasing a liquor which tends to the ruin of them and their families. My own will and desires were now very much broken, and my heart was with much earnestness turned to the Lord, to whom alone I looked for help in the dangers before me. I had a prospect of the English along the coast for upwards of nine hundred miles, where I travelled, and their favorable situation and the difficulties attending the natives as well as the negroes in many places were open before me. A weighty and heavenly care came over my mind, and love filled my heart towards all mankind, in which I felt a strong engage- ment that we might be obedient to the Lord while in tender mercy he is yet calling to us, and that we might so attend to pure universal righteousness as to give no just cause of offence to the gentiles, who do not profess Christianity, whether they be the blacks from Africa, or the native inhabi- tants of this continent. Here I was led into a close and laborious inquiry whether I, as an individual, kept clear from all things which tended to stir up or were connected with wars, either in this land or in Africa; my heart was deeply concerned that in future I might in all things keep steadily to the pure truth, and live and walk in the plainness and simplicity of a sincere follower of Christ. In this lonely journey I did greatly bewail the spreading of a wrong spirit, believing that the prosperous, convenient situation of the English would require a constant attention in us to Divine love and wisdom, in order to their being guided and sup- ported in a way answerable to the will of that good, gracious, and Almighty Being, who hath an equal regard to all man- kind. And here luxury and covetousness, with the numerous oppressions and other evils attending them, appeared very afflicting to me, and I felt in that which is immutable that the seeds of great calamity and desolation are sown and growing fast on this continent. Nor have I words sufficient to s<^t forth the longing I then felt, that we who are placed along the coast, and have tasted the love and goodness of God, might arise in the strength thereof, and like faithful messengers labor to check the growth of these seeds, that they may not ripen to the ruin of our posterity. On reaching the Indian settlement at Wyoming, we were THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 273 told that an Indian runner had been at that place a day or two before tis, and brought news of the Indians having taken an English fort westward, and destroyed the people, and that they were endeavoring to take another; also that another Indian runner came there about the middle of the previous night from a town about ten miles fram Wehaloosing, and brought the news that some Indian warriors from distant parts came to that town with two English scalps, and told the people that it was war with the English. Our guides took us to the house of a very ancient man. Soon after we had put in our baggage there came a man from another Indian house some distance off. Perceiving there was a man near the door I went out; the man had a tomahawk wrapped under his match-coat out of sight. As I approached him he took it in his hand; I went forward, and, speaking to him in a friendly way, perceived he under- stood some English. My companion joining me, we had some talk with him concerning the nature of our visit in these parts; he then went Into the house with us, and, talk- ing with our guides, soon appeared friendly, sat down and smoked his pipe. Though taking his hatchet in his hand at the instant I drew near to him had a disagreeable appear- ance, I believe he had no other intent than to be in readi- ness in case any violence were offered to him. On hearing the news brought by these Indian runners, and being told by the Indians where we lodged, that the Indians about Wyoming expected in a few days to move to some larger towns, I thought, to all outward appearance, it would be dangerous travelling at this time. After a hard 'day's journey I was brought into a painful exercise at night, in which I had to trace back and view the steps I had taken from my first moving in the visit; and though I had to bewail some weakness which at times had attended me, yet I could not find that I had ever given way to wilful dis- obedience. Believing I had, under a sense of duty, come thus far, I was now earnest in spirit, beseeching the Lord to show m.e what I ought to do. In this great distress I grew jealous of myself, lest the desire of reputation as a man firmly settled to persevere through dangers, or the fear of disgrace from my returning without performing the visit. 274 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN might have some place in me. Full of these thoughts, I lay great part of the night, while my beloved companion slept by me, till the Lord, my gracious Father, who saw the con- flicts of my soul, was pleased to give quietness. Then I was again strengthened to commit my life, and all things relat- ing thereto, into his heavenly hands, and got a little sleep towards day. Fourteenth of sixth m^onth. — ^We sought out and visited all the Indians hereabouts that we could m^eet with, in num- ber about twenty. They were chiefly in one place, about a mile from where we lodged. I expressed to them the care I had on my mind for their good, and told them that true love had made me willing thus to leave my family to come and see the Indians and speak with them in their houses. Some of them appeared kind and friendly. After taking leave of them, we went up the river Susquehanna about three miles, to the house of an Indian called Jacob January. He had killed his hog, and the women were m.aking store of bread and preparing to move up the river. Here our pilots had left their canoe when they came down in the spring, and lying dry it had become leaky. This detained us some hours, so that v/e had a good deal of friendly conversation with the family; and, eating dinner with them, we made them some small presents. Then putting our baggage into the canoe, some of them pushed slowly up the stream, and the rest of us rode our horses. We sv/am them over a creek called Lahawahamunk, and pitched our tent above it in the evening. In a sense of God's goodness in helping me in my distress, sustaining me under trials, and inclining my heart to trust in him, I lay down in an humble, bowed frame of mind, and had a comfortable night's lodging. Fifteenth of sixth month. — We proceeded forward till the afternoon, when, a storm appearing, we met our canoe at an appointed place and stayed all night, the rain continuing so heavy that it beat through our tent and wet both us and our baggage. The next day we found abundance of trees blown down by the storm yesterday, and had occasion reverently to consider the kind dealings of the Lord who provided a safe place for us in a valley while this storm continued. We were much hinde^red by the trees which had THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 275 fallen across our path, and in some swamps our way was so stopped that v/e got through with extreme difficulty. I had this day often to consider myself as a sojourner in this world. A belief in the all-sufficiency of God to support his people in their pilgrimage felt comfortable to me, and I was industriously employed to get to a state of perfect resignation. We seldom saw our canoe but at appointed places, by reason of the path going off from the river. This afternoon Job Chilaway, an Indian from Wehaloosing, who talks good English and is acquainted with several people in and about Philadelphia, m.et our people on the river. Understanding where we expected to lodge, he pushed back about six miles, and came to us after night; and in a while our own canoe arrived, it being hard work pushing up the stream. Job told us that an Indian came in haste to their town yes- terday and told them that three warriors from a distance lodged in a town above Wehaloosing a few nights past, and that these three men were going against the English at Juniata. Job was going down the river to the province- store at Shamokin. Though I was so far favored with health as to continue travelling, yet, through the various difficulties in our journey, and the different v/ay of living from which I had been used to, I grew sick. The nev/s of these warriors being on their march so near us, and not knowing whether we might not fall in with them, was a fresh trial of my faith; and though, through the strength of Divine love, I had several times been enabled to commit myself to the Divine disposal, I still found the want of a renewal of my strength, that I might be able to persevere therein; and my cries for help were put up to the Lord, who, in great mercy, gave me a resigned heart, in which I found quietness. Parting from Job Chilaway on the 17th, we went on and reached Wehaloosing about the middle of the afternoon. The first Indian that we saw was a woman of a modest countenance, with a Bible, who spake first to our guide, and then with an harmonious voice expressed her gladness at seeing us, having before heard of our coming. By the direction of our guide we sat down on a log while he went 276 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN to the town to tell the people we were come. My companion and I, sitting thus together in a deep inward stillness, the poor woman came and sat near us; and, great awfulness coming over us, we rejoiced in a sense of God's love mani- fested to our poor souls. After a while we heard a conch- shell blow several times, and then cam.e John Curtis and another Indian man, who kindly invited us into a house near the town, where we found about sixty people sitting in silence. After sitting with them a short time I stood up, and in some tenderness of spirit acquainted them, in a few short sentences, with the nature of my visit, and that a concern for their good had made me willing to come thus far to see them; which some of them understanding inter- preted to the others, and there appeared gladness among them. I then showed them my certificate, which was ex- plained to them; and the Moravian who overtook us on the way, being now here, bade me welcome. But the Indians knowing that this Moravian and I were of different religious societies, and as some of their people had encouraged him to come and stay awhile with them, they were, I believe, concerned that there might be no jarring or discord in their meetings; and having, I suppose, conferred together, they acquainted me that the people, at my request, would at any time come together and hold meetings. They also told me that they expected the Moravian would speak in their set- tled meetings, which are commonly held in the morning and near evening. So finding liberty in my heart to speak to the Moravian, I told him of the care I felt on my mind for the good of these people, and my belief that no ill effects would follow if I sometimes spake in their meetings when love engaged me thereto, without calling them together at times when they did not meet of course. He expressed his good- will towards my speaking at any time all that I found in my heart to say. On the evening of the i8th I was at their meeting, where pure gospel love was felt, to the tendering of some of our hearts. The interpreters endeavored to acquaint the people with what I said, in short sentences, but found some diffi- culty, as none of them were quite perfect in the English and Delaware tongues, so they helped one another, and we THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 277 labored along, Divine love attending. Afterwards, feeling my mind covered with the spirit of prayer, I told the inter- preters that I found it in my heart to pray to God, and believed, if I prayed aright, he would hear me; and I ex- pressed my willingness for them to omit interpreting; so our meeting ended with a degree of Divine love. Before the people v/ent out, I observed Papunehang (the man who had been zealous in laboring for a reformation in that town, being then very tender) speaking to one of the interpreters, and I was aftervvrards told that he said in substance as fol- lows : " I love to feel where v/ords come from." Nineteenth of sixth month and first of the week. — This m.orning the Indian who came with the Moravian, being also a member of that society, prayed in the meeting, and then the Moravian spake a short time to the people. In the after- noon, my heart being filled with a heavenly care for their good, I spake to them awhile by interpreters; but none of them being perfect in the work, and I feeling the current of love run strong, told the interpreters that I believed some of the people would understand me, and so I proceeded with- out them; and I believe the Holy Ghost wrought on som.e hearts to edification where all the words were not under- stood. I looked upon it as a time of Divine favor, and my heart was tendered and truly thankful before the Lord. After I sat down, one of the interpreters seemed spirited to give the Indians the substance of what I said. Before our first meeting this morning, I was led to medi- tate on the manifold difficulties of these Indians who, by the permission of the Six Nations, dwell in these parts. A near sympathy with them was raised in me, and, my heart being enlarged in the love of Christ, I thought that the affectionate care of a good man for his only brother in affliction does not exceed what I then felt for that people. I came to this place through much trouble; and though through the mer- cies of God I believed that if I died in the journey it would be well with me, yet the thoughts of falling into the hands of Indian warriors were, in times of v/eakness, afflicting to me ; and being of a tender constitution of body, the thoughts of captivity among them were also grievous ; supposing that as they were strong and hardy they might demand service 278 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN of me beyond what I could well bear. But the Lord alone was my keeper, and I believed that if I went into captivity it would be for some good end. Thus, from time to time, my mind was centred in resignation, in which I always found quietness. And this day, though I had the same dangerous wilderness between me and home, I was inwardly joyful that the Lord had strengthened me to come on this visit, and had manifested a fatherly care over me in my poor lowly condition, when, in mine own eyes, I appeared inferior to many among the Indians. When the last-mentioned meeting was ended, it being night, Papunehang went to bed ; and hearing him speak with an harmonious voice, I suppose for a minute or two, I asked the interpreter, who told me that he was expressing his thankfulness to God for the favors he had received that day, and prayed that he would continue to favor him with the same, which he had experienced in that meeting. Though Papunehang had before agreed to receive the Moravian and join with them, he still appeared kind and loving to us. I was at two meetings on the 20th, and silent in them. The following morning, in meeting, my heart was enlarged in pure love among them, and in short plain sentences I expressed several things that rested upon me, which one of the interpreters gave the people pretty readily. The meeting ended in supplication, and I had cause humbly to acknowl- edge the loving-kindness of the Lord towards us ; and then I believed that a door remained open for the faithful dis- ciples of Jesus Christ to labor among these people. And now, feeling my mind at liberty to return, I took my leave of them in general at the conclusion of what I said in meet- ing, and we then prepared to go homeward. But some of their most active men told us that when we were ready to move the people would choose to come and shake hands with us. Those who usually came to meeting did so; and from a secret draught in my mind I went among some who did not usually go to meeting, and took my leave of them also. The Moravian and his Indian interpreter appeared respectful to us at parting. This town, Wehaloosing, stands on the bank of the Susquehanna, and consists, I believe, of about forty houses, mostly compact together, some about THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 279 thirty feet long and eighteen wide, — some bigger, some less. They are built m.ostly of split plank, one end being set in the ground, and the other pinned to a plate on which rafters are laid, and then covered with bark. I understand a great flood last winter overflowed the greater part of the ground where the town stands, and some were now about moving their houses to higher ground. We expected only two Indians to be of our company, but when we were ready to go we found many of them were going to Bethlehem with skins and furs, and chose to go in company with us. So they loaded tv/o canoes in which they desired us to go, telling us that the waters were so raised with the rains that the horses should be taken by such as were better acquainted with the fording-places. We, there- fore, with several Indians, went in the canoes, and others went on horses, there being seven besides ours. We met with the horsemen once on the way by appointment, and at night we lodged a little below a branch called Tankhannah, and some of the young men, going out a little before dusk with their guns, brought in a deer. Through diligence we reached Wyoming before night, the 22d, and understood that the Indians were mostly gone from this place. We went up a small creek into the woods with our canoes, and, pitching our tent, carried out our baggage, and before dark our horses came to us. Next morning, the horses being loaded and our baggage prepared, we set for- ward, being in all fourteen, and with diligent travelling were favored to get near half-way to Fort Allen. The land on this road from Wyoming to our frontier being mostly poor, and good grass being scarce, the Indians chose a piece of low ground to lodge on, as the best for grazing. I had sweat much in travelling, and, being weary, slept soundly. In the night I perceived that I had taken cold, of which I was favored soon to get better. Twenty-fourth of sixth month. — This day we passed Fort Allen and lodged near it in the woods. We forded the westerly branch of the Delaware three times, which was a shorter way than going over the top of the Blue Mountains called the Second Ridge. In the second time of fording where the river cuts through the mountain, the waters being 280 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN rapid and pretty deep, my companion's mare, being a tall, tractable animal, was sundry times driven back through the river, being laden with the burdens of some small horses which were thought unable to come through with their loads. The troubles westward, and the difficulty for Indians to pass through our frontier, was, I apprehend, one reason why so many came, expecting that our being in company would prevent the outside inhabitants being surprised. We reached Bethlehem on the 25th, taking care to keep foremost, and to acquaint people on and near the road who these Indians were. This we found very needful, for the frontier in- habitants were often alarmed at the report of the English being killed by Indians westward. Among our company were some whom I did not remember to have seen at meeting, and some of these at first were very reserved; but we being several days together, and behaving in a friendly manner towards them, and making them suitable return for the services they did us, they became more free and sociable. Twenty-sixth of sixth month. — Having carefully endeav- ored to settle all affairs with the Indians relative to our journey, we took leave of them, and I thought they generally parted from us affectionately. We went forward to Rich- land and had a very comfortable meeting among our friends, it being the first day of the week. Here I parted with my kind friend and companion Benjamin Parvin, and, accom- panied by my friend Samuel Foulk, we rode to John Cad- wallader's, from whence I reached home the next day, and found my family tolerably well. They and my friends ap- peared glad to see me return from a journey which they apprehended would be dangerous; but my mind, while I was out, had been so employed in striving for perfect resig- nation, and had so often been confirmed in a belief, that, whatever the Lord might be pleased to allot for me, it would work for good, that I was careful lest I should admit any degree of selfishness in being glad overmuch, and labored to improve by those trials in such a manner as my gracious Father and Protector designed. Between the English set- tlements and Wehaloosing we had only a narrow path, which in many places is much grown up with bushes, and inter- rupted by abundance of trees lying across it. These, to- THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 281 1 I gether with the mountain swamps and rough stones, make i it a difficult road to travel, and the more so because rattle- j snakes abound here, of which we killed four. People yrho i have never been in such places have but an imperfect idea , of them; and I was not only taught patience, but also made I thankful to God, who thus led about and instructed me, | that I might have a quick and lively feeling of the afflictions i of my fellow-creatures, whose situation in life is difiScult. j CHAPTER IX 1753-1769 •Religious Conversation with a Company met to see the Tricks of a Juggler — Account of John Smith's Advice and of the Proceed- ings of a Committee at the Yearly Meeting in 1764 — Contempla- tions on the Nature of True Wisdom — Visit to the Families of Friends at Mount Holly, Mansfield, and Burlington, and to the Meetings on the Sea-Coast from Cape May towards Squan — Some Account of Joseph Nichols and his Followers — On the different State of the First Settlers in Pennsylvania who de- pended on their own Labor, compared with those of the South- ern Provinces who kept Negroes — Visit to the Northern Parts of New Jersey and the Western Parts of Maryland and Penn- sylvania ; also to the Families of Friends at Mount Holly and several Parts of Maryland — Further Considerations on keep- ing Slaves, and his Concern for having been a Party to the Sale of One — Thoughts on Friends exercising Offices in Civil Government. I HE latter part of the summer, 1763, there came a man to Mount Holly who had previously published a printed advertisement that at a certain public-house he vi^ould show many wonderful operations, which were therein enumerated. At the appointed time he did, by sleight of hand, perform sundry things which appeared strange to the spectators. Understanding that the show was to be re- peated the next night, and that the people were to meet about sunset, I felt an exercise on that account. So I went to the public-house in the evening, and told the man of the house that I had an inclination to spend a part of the evening there; with which he signified that he was content. Then, sitting down by the door, I spoke to the people in the fear of the Lord, as they came together, concerning this show, and labored to convince them that their thus assem- bling to see these sleight-of-hand tricks, and bestowing their money to support men who, in that capacity, were of no 282 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 283 use to the world, was contrary to the nature of the Christian religion. One of the company endeavored to show by argu- ments the reasonableness of their proceedings herein; but after considering some texts of Scripture and calmly debat- ing the matter he gave up the point. After spending about an hour among them, and feeling ray mind easy, I departed. Twenty-fifth* of ninth month, 1764. — At our Yearly Meet- ing at Philadelphia this day, John Smith, of Marlborough, aged upwards of eighty years, a faithful minister, though not eloquent, stood up in our meeting of ministers and elders, and, appearing to be under a great exercise of spirit, in- formed Friends in substance as follows : " That he had been a member of our Society upwards of sixty years, and he well remembered, that, in those early times, Friends were a plain, lowly-minded people, and that there was much tenderness and contrition in their meetings. That, at twenty years from that time, the Society increasing in wealth and in some degree conforming to the fashions of the world, true humility was less apparent, and their meetings in gen- eral were not so lively and edifying. That at the end of forty years many of them were grown very rich, and many of the Society made a specious appearance in the world; that wearing fine costly garments, and using silver and other watches, became customary with them, their sons, and their daughters. These marks of outward wealth and greatness appeared on some in our meetings of ministers and elders; and, as such things became more prevalent, so the powerful overshadowings of the Holy Ghost were less manifest in the Society. That there Had been a continued increase of such ways of life, even until the present time; and that the weakness which hath now overspread the So- ciety and the barrenness manifest among us is matter of much sorrow." He then mentioned the uncertainty of his attending these meetings in future, expecting his dissolution was near; and, having tenderly expressed his concern for us, signified that he had seen in the true light that the Lord would bring back his people from these things, into which they were thus degenerated, but that his faithful ser- vants must go through great and heavy exercises. *[ Twenttethf—Ed.\ 284 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN Twentieth* of ninth month. — The committee appointed by the Yearly Meeting to visit the Quarterly and Monthly Meetings gave an account in writing of their proceedings in that service. They signified that in the course of the visit they had been apprehensive that some persons holding offices in government inconsistent with our principles, and others who kept slaves, remaining active members in our meetings for discipline, had been one means of weakness prevailing in some places. After this report was read, an exercise re- vived in my mind which had attended me for several years, and inward cries to the Lord were raised in me that the fear of man might not prevent me from doing what he re- quired of me, and, standing up, I spoke in substance as fol- lows : " I have felt a tenderness in my mind towards persons in two circumstances mentioned in that report; nam.ely, towards such active members as keep slaves and such as hold offices in civil government; and I have desired that Friends, in all their conduct, may be kindly affectioned one towards another. Many Friends who keep slaves are under some exercise on that account; and at times think about trying them with freedom, but find many things in their way. The way of living and the annual expenses of some of them are such that it seems impracticable for them to set their slaves free without changing their own way of life. It has been my lot to be often abroad; and I have observed in some places, at Quarterly and Yearly Meetings, and at some houses where travelling Friends and their horses are often entertained, that the yearly expense of individuals therein is very considerable. And Friends in some places crowding much on persons in these circumstances for en- tertainment hath rested as a burden on my mind for some years past. I now express it in the fear of the Lord, greatly desiring that Friends here present may duly consider it." In the fall of this year, having hired a man to work, I perceived in conversation with him that he had been a soldier in the late war on this continent; and he informed me in the evening, in a narrative of his captivity among the Indians, that he saw two of his fellow-captives tortured to death in a very cruel manner. This relation affected me • [ Twmty-HUh?-Ed.\ THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 285 with sadness, under which I went to bed; and the next morning, soon after I awoke, a fresh and living sense of Divine love overspread my mind, in which I had a renewed prospect of the nature of that wisdom from above which leads to a right use of all gifts, both spiritual and temporal, and gives content therein. Under a feeling thereof, I wrote as follows: — " Hath He who gave me a being attended with many wants unknown to brute creatures given me a capacity supe- rior to theirs, and shown me that a moderate application to business is suitable to my present condition; and that this, attended with his blessing, may supply all my outward wants while they remain within the bounds he hath fixed, and while no imaginary wants proceeding from an evil spirit have any place in me ? Attend then, O my soul ! to this pure wisdom as thy sure conductor through the manifold dangers of this world. " Doth pride lead to vanity ? Doth vanity form imaginary wants? Do these wants prompt men to exert their power in requiring more from others than they would be willing to perform themselves, were the same required of them? Do these proceedings beget hard thoughts? Do hard" thoughts, w^hen ripe, become malice? Does malice, when ripe, become revengeful, and in the end inflict terrible pains on our fellow-creatures and spread desolations in the world? " Do mankind, walking in uprightness, delight in each other's happiness? And do those who are capable of this attainment, by giving way to an evil spirit, employ their skill and strength to afflict and destroy one another? Remember then, O my soul ! the quietude of those in whom Christ governs, and in all thy proceedings feel after it. " Doth he condescend to bless thee with his presence ? To move and influence thes to action? To dwell and to walk in thee? Remember tlien thy station as being sacred to God. Accept of the strength freely offered to thee, and take heed that no weakness in conforming to unwise, expensive, and hard-hearted customs, gendering to discord and strife, be given way to. Doth he claim my body as his temple, and graciously require that I may be sacred to him? O that I may prize this favor, and that ^y whole life may be con- 286 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN formable to this character ! Remember, O my soul ! that the Prince of Peace is thy Lord; that he communicates his unmixed wisdom to his family, that they, living in perfect simplicity, may give no just cause of offence to any creature, but that they may walk as He walked !" Having felt an openness in my heart towards visiting families in our own meeting, and especially in the town of Mount Holly, the place of my abode, I mentioned it at our Monthly Meeting in the fore part of the winter of 1764, which being agreed to, and several Friends of our meeting being united in the exercise, we proceeded therein; and through Divine favor we were helped in the work, so that it appeared to me as a fresh reviving of godly care among Friends. The latter part of the samxC winter I joined my friend William Jones in a visit to Friends' families in Mans- field, in which labor I had cause to admire the goodness of the Lord toward us. '\ My mind being drawn towards Friends along the sea- coast from Cape May to near Squan, and also to visit some people in those parts, among whom there is no settled wor- ship, I joined with my beloved friend Benjamin Jones in a visit to them, having Friends' unity therein. We set off the 24th of tenth month, 1765, and had a prosperous and very satisfactory journey, feeling at times, through the goodness of the Heavenly Shepherd, the gospel to flow freely towards a poor people scattered in these places. Soon after our re- turn I joined my friends John Sleeper and Elizabeth Smith in a visit to Friends' families at Burlington, there being at this time about fifty families of our Society in that city; and we had cause humbly to adore our Heavenly Father, who baptized us into a feeling of the state of the people, and strengthened us to labor in true gospel love among them. Having had a concern at times for several years to pay a religious visit to Friends on the Eastern Shore of Mary- land, and to travel on foot among them, that by so travelling I might have a more lively feeling of the condition of the oppressed slaves, set an example of lowliness before the eyes of their masters, and be more out of the way of temptation to unprofitable converse; and the time drawing near in which I believed it my duty to lay my concern before our THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 287 Monthly Meeting, I perceived, in conversation with my be- loved friend John Sleeper, that he also was under a similar concern to travel on foot in the form of a servant among them, as he expressed it. This he told me before he knew aught of my exercise. Being thus drawn the same way, we laid our exercise and the nature of it before Friends; and, obtaining certificates, we set off the 6th of fifth month, 1766, and were at meetings with Friends at Wilmington, Duck Creek, Little Creek, and Motherkill. My heart was often tendered under the Divine influence, and enlarged in love towards the people among whom we travelled. From Motherkill we crossed the country about thirty-five miles to Tuckahoe, in Maryland, and had a meeting there, and also at Marshy Creek. At the last three meetings there were a considerable number of the followers of one Joseph Nichols, a preacher, who, I understand, is not in outward fellowship with any religious society, but professeth nearly the same principles as those of our Society, and often travels up and down, appointing meetings vv^hich many people attend. I heard of some who had been irreligious people that were now his followers, and were become sober, well- behaved men and women. Some irregularities, I hear, have been among the people at several of his meetings ; but from what I have perceived I believe the man and some of his followers are honestly disposed, but that skilful fathers are wanting among them.. We then went to Choptank and Third Haven, and thence to Queen Anne's. The weather for some days past having been hot and dry, and we having travelled pretty steadily and having hard labor in meetings, I grew weakly, at which I was for a time discouraged; but looking over our journey and considering how the Lord had supported our minds and bodies, so that we had gone forward m^uch faster than I expected before we came out, I sav7 that I had been in danger of too strongly desiring to get quickly through the journey, and that the bodily weakness now attending me was a kindness; and then, in contrition of spirit, I became very thankful to my gracious Father for this manifestation of his love, and in humble submission to his will my trust in him was renewed. 288 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN In this part of our journey I had many thoughts on the 'different circumstances of Friends who inhabit Pennsyl- vania and Jersey from those who dwell in Maryland, Vir- ginia, and Carolina. Pennsylvania and New Jersey were settled by Friends who were convinced of our principles in England in times of suffering; these, coming over, bought lands of the natives, and applied to husbandry in a peaceable way, and many of their children were taught to labor for their living. Few of these, I believe, settled in any of the southern provinces; but by the faithful labors of travelling Friends in early times there was considerable convincement among the inhabitants of these parts. I also remembered having read of the warlike disposition of many of the first settlers in those provinces, and of their numerous engagements with the natives in which much blood was shed even in the in- fancy of the colonies. Some of the people inhabiting those places, being grounded in customs contrary to the pure truth, were affected with the powerful preaching of the Word of Life and joined in fellowship with our Society, and in so doing they had a great work to go through. In the history of the reformation from Popery it is observable that the progress was gradual from age to age. The up- rightness of the first reformers in attending to the light and understanding given to them opened the way for sincere- hearted people to proceed further afterwards ; and thus each one truly fearing God and laboring in the works of right- eousness appointed for him in his day findeth acceptance with Him. Through the darkness of the times and the cor- ruption of manners and customs, some upright men may have had little more for their day's work than to attend to the righteous principle in their minds as it related to their own conduct in life without pointing out to others the whole extent of that into v/hich the same principle would lead suc- ceeding ages. Thus, for instance, among an imperious, war- like people, supported by oppressed slaves, some of these masters, I suppose, are awakened to feel and to see their error, and through sincere repentance cease from oppression and become like fathers to their servants, showing by their example a pattern of humility in living, and moderation in governing, for the instruction and admonition of their THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 289 Oppressing neighbors; these, without carrying the reforma- tion further, have, I believe, found acceptance with the Lord. Such was the beginning; and those who succeeded them, and who faithfully attended to the nature and spirit of the reformation, have seen the necessity of proceeding forward, and have not only to instruct others by their own example in governing well, but have also to use means to prevent their successors from having so much power to oppress others. Here I was renewedly confirmed in my mind that the Lord {whose tender mercies are over all his works, and whose ear is open to the cries and groans of the oppressed) is graciously moving in the hearts of people to draw them off from the desire of wealth and to bring them into such an humble, lowly v/ay of living that they may see their way clearly to repair to the standard of true righteousness, and may not only break the yoke of oppression, but may know him to be their strength and support in times of outward affliction. We crossed Chester River, had a meeting there, and also at Cecil and Sassafras. My bodily weakness, joined with a heavy exercise of mind, was to me an humbling dispensa- tion, and I had a very lively feeling of t^e state of the op- pressed; yet I often thought that what I s«uffered was little compared with the sufferings of the blessed Jesus and many of his faithful followers; and I may say with thankfulness that I was made content. From Sassafras we went pretty directly home, where we found our families well. For sev- eral weeks after our return I had often to look over our journey; and though to me it appeared as a small service, and that some faithful messengers will yet have more bitter cups to drink in those southern provinces for Christ's sake than we have had, yet I found peace in that I had been helped to walk in sincerity according to the understanding and strength given to me. Thirteenth of eleventh month. — With the unity of Friends at our monthly meeting, and in company with my beloved friend Benjamin Jones, I set out on a visit to Friends in the upper part of this province, having had drawings of love in my heart that w^ay for a considerable time. We travelled as far as Hardwick, and I had inward peace in my labo3r» 10 HC— Vol. 1 290 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN of love among them. Through the humbling dispensations o£ Divine Providence my mind hath been further brought into a feeling of the difficulties of Friends and their servants southv/estward ; and being often engaged in spirit on their account I believed it my duty to walk into some parts of the western shore of Maryland on a religious visit. Having obtained a certificate from Friends of our Monthly Meeting, I took leave of my family under the heart-tendering opera- tion of truth, and on the 20th of fourth month, 1767, rode to the ferry opposite to Philadelphia, and thence walked to William Home's, at Derby, the same evening. Next day I pursued my journey alone and reached Concord Week-Day Meeting. Discouragements and a v/eight of distress had at times attended me in this lonesome walk, but through these afflic- tions I was m.ercifully preserved. Sitting down with Friends, m.y mind was turned towards the Lord to wait for his holy leadings; and in infinite love he was pleased to soften my heart into humble contrition, and renev/edly to strengthen me to go forv^^ard, so that to me it was a time of heavenly refreshment in a silent meeting. The next day I came to Nev^ Garden Week-Day Meeting, in which I sat in bowedness of spirit, and being baptized into a feeling of the state of some present, the Lord gave us a heart-tendering season ; to his name be the praise. Passing on, I was at Nottingham Monthly Meeting, and at a m.eeting at Little Britain on first-day; in the afternoon several Friends came to the house where I lodged and we had a little afternoon meeting, and through the humbling power of truth I had to admire the loving-kindness of the Lord manifested to us. Twenty-sixth of fourth month. — I crossed the Susque- hanna, and coming among people in outward ease and greatness, supported chiefly on the labor of slaves, my heart was much affected, and in awful retiredness my mind was gathered inward to the Lord^ humbly desiring that in true resignation I might receive instruction from him respecting my duty among this people. Though travelling on foot was wearisome to my body, yet it was agreeable to the state of my mind. Being weakly, I was covered with sorrow and heaviness on account of the prevailing spirit of this world THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 291 hj which customs grievous and oppressive are introduced on the one hand, and pride and wantonness on the other. In this lonely walk and state of abasement and humiliation, the condition of the church in these parts was opened before me, and I may truly say with the Prophet, " I was bowed down at the hearing of it; I was dismayed at the seeing of it." Under this exercise I attended the Quarterly Meet- ing at Gunpowder, and in bowedness of spirit I had to express with much plainness my feelings respecting Friends living in fulness on the labors of the poor oppressed negroes ; and that promise of the Most High was now revived, " I will gather all nations and tongues, and they shall come and see my glory." Here the sufferings of Christ and his tasting death for every man, and the travels, sufferings, and martyr- dom of the Apostles and primitive Christians in laboring for the conversion of the Gentiles, were livingly revived in me, and according to the measure of strength afforded I labored in some tenderness of spirit, being deeply affected among them. The difference between the present treatment which these gentiles, the negroes, receive at our hands, and the labors of the primitive Christians for the conversion of the Gentiles, were pressed home, and the power of truth came over us, under a feeling of which my mind was united to a tender-hearted people in these parts. The meeting con- cluded in a sense of God's goodness towards his humble, dependent children. The next day was a general meeting for worship, much crowded, in which I was deeply engaged in inward cries to the Lord for help, that I might stand wholly resigned, and move only as he might be pleased to lead me. I was merci- fully helped to labor honestly and fervently among them, in which I found inward peace, and the sincere were com- forted. From this place I turned towards Pipe Creek and the Red Lands, and had several meetings among Friends in those parts. My heart was often tenderly affected under a sense of the Lord's goodness in sanctifying my troubles and exercises, turning them to my comfort, and I believe to the benefit of many others, for I may say with thankfulness that in this visit it appeared like a tendering visitation in most places. 292 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN I passed on to the Western Quarterly Meeting in Penn- sylvania. During the several days of this meeting I w^as mercifully preserved in an inward feeling after the mind of truth, and my public labors tended to my humiliation, with which I was content. After the Quarterly Meeting for wor- ship ended, I felt drawings to go to the women's meeting for business, v/hich was very full; here the humility of Jesus Christ as a pattern for us to walk by was livingly opened before me, and in treating on it my heart was enlarged, and it was a baptizing time. I was afterwards at meetings at Concord, Middletown, Providence, and Haddonfield, whence I returned home and found my family well. A sense of the Lord's merciful preservation in this my journey excites reverent thankfulness to him. Second of ninth month, 1767. — With the unity of Friends, I set off on a visit to Friends in the upper part of Berks and Philadelphia counties; was at eleven meetings in about two weeks, and have renewed cause to bow in reverence before the Lord, who, by the powerful extendings of his humbling goodness, opened my way among Friends, and I trust made the meetings profitable to us. The following winter I joined some Friends in a family visit to some part of our meeting, in which exercise the pure influence of Divine love made our visits reviving. Fifth of fifth month, 1768. — I left home under the hum- bling hand of the Lord, with a certificate to visit some meet- ings in Maryland, and to proceed without a horse seemed clearest to me. I was at the Quarterly Meetings at Phila- delphia and Concord, whence I proceeded to Chester River, and, crossing the bay, was at the Yearly Meeting at West River; I then returned to Chester River, and, taking a few meetings in my way, proceeded home. It was a journey of much inward waiting, and as my eye was to the Lord, way was several times opened to my humbling admiration when things appeared very difiicult. On my return I felt a very comfortable relief of mind, having through Divine help labored in much plainness, both with Friends selected and in the more public meetings, so that I trust the pure witness m many minds was reached. Eleventh of sixth month, 1769.— -There have been sundry THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 293 cases of late years within the limits of our Monthly Meet- ing, respecting the exercising of pure righteousness towards the negroes, in which I have lived under a labor of heart that equity might be steadily preserved. On this account I have had some close exercises among Friends, in which, I may thankfully say, I find peace. And as my meditations have been on universal love, my own conduct in time past became of late v^ry grievous to me. As persons setting negroes free in our province are bound by law to maintain them in case they have need of relief, some in the time of my youth who scrupled to keep slaves for term of life were wont to detain their young negroes in their service without wages till they were thirty years ol age. With this custom I so far agreed that being joined with another Friend in executing the will of a deceased Friend, I once sold a negro lad till he might attain the age of thirty years, and applied the money to the use of the estate. With abasement of heart I may now say that sometimes as I have sat in a meeting with my heart exercised towards that awful Being who respecteth not persons nor colors, and have thought upon this lad, I have felt that all was not clear in my mind respecting him ; and as I have attended to this exercise and fervently sought the Lord, it hath ap- peared to me that I should make some restitution; but in what way I saw not till lately, when being under some con- cern that I might be resigned to go on a visit to some part of the West Indies, and under close engagement of spirit seeking to the Lord for counsel herein, the aforesaid trans- action came heavily upon me, and my mind for a time was covered with darkness and sorrow. Under this sore afflic- tion my heart was softened to receive instruction, and I now first perceived that as I had been one of the two executors who had sold this lad for nine years longer than is common for our own children to serve, so I should nov7 offer part of my substance to redeem the last half of the nine years; but as the time was not yet come, I executed a bond, bind- ing myself and my executors to pay to the man to whom he was sold what to candid men might appear equitable for the last four and a half years of his time, in case the said youth 294 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN should be living, and in a condition likely to provide com- fortably for himself. Ninth of tenth month. — My heart hath often been deeply afHicted under a feeling that the standard of pure righteous- ness is not lifted up to the people by us, as a society, in that clearness which it might have been, had we been as faithful as we ought to be to the teachings of Christ. And as my mind hath been inward to the Lord, the purity of Christ's government hath been made clear to my understanding, and I have believed, in the opening of universal love, that where a people v/ho are convinced of the truth of the inward teach- ings of Christ are active in putting laws in execution which are not consistent with pure v/isdom, it hath a necessary tendency to bring dimness over their minds. My heart hav- ing been thus exercised for several years with a tender sym- pathy towards my fellow-members, I have v/ithin a few months past expressed my concern on this subject in several meetings for discipline. CHAPTER X 1769, 1770 Bodily Indisposition — Exercise of his Mind for the Good of the People in the West Indies — Communicates to Friends his Con- cern to visit some of those Islands — Preparations to embark — Considerations on the Trade to the West Indies — Release from his Concern and return Home — Religious Engagements — Sick- ness, and Exercise of his Mind therein. |WELFTH of third month, 1769. — Having for some years past dieted myself on account of illness and weakness of body, and not having ability to travel by land as heretofore, I was at times favored to look with awfulness towards the Lord, before whom are all my wa3''s, Vv^ho alone hath the power of life and death, and to feel thankfulness raised in me for this fatherly chastisement, be- lieving that if I was truly humbled under it all would work for good. While under this bodily weakness, my mind was at times exercised for my fellow-creatures in the West In- dies, and I grew jealous over myself lest the disagreeableness of the prospect should hinder me from obediently attending thereto; for, though I knev/ not that the Lord required me to go there, yet I believed that resignation was now called for in th^:t respect. Feeling a danger of not being wholly devoted to him, I was frequently engaged to watch unto prayer that I might be preserved; and upwards of a year having passed, as I one day walked in a solitary wood, my mind being covered with awfulness, cries were raised in me to my merciful Father, that he would graciously keep me in faithfulness; and it then settled on my mind, as a duty, to open my condition to Friends at our Monthly Meeting, which I did soon after, as follows: — " An exercise hath attended me for some time past, and 29$ 296 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN of late hath been more weighty upon me, which is, tflat I believe it is required of me to be resigned to go on a visit to some parts of the West Indies." In the Quarterly and Gen- eral Spring Meetings I found no clearness to express any- thkig further than that I believed resignatioia herein was required of me. Having obtained certificates from all the said meetings, I felt like a sojourner at my outward habitation, and kept free from worldly encum- brances, and I was often bowed in spirit before the Lord, with inward breathings to him that I might be rightly directed. I may here note that the circumstance before re- lated of my having, when young, joined with another ex- ecutor in selling a negro lad till he might attain the age of thirty years, was now the cause of much sorrow to me ; and, after having settled matters relating to this youth, I pro- vided a sea-store and bed, and things for the voyage. Hear- ing of a vessel likely to sail from Philadelphia for Barbadoes, I spake with one of the owners at Burlington, and soon after went to Philadelphia on purpose to speak to him again. He told me there was a Friend in town who was part owner of the said vessel. I felt no inclination to speak with the latter, but returned home. Awhile after I took leave of my family, and, going to Philadelphia, had some weighty conversation with the first-mentioned owner, and showed him a writing, as follows: — " On the 25th of eleventh month, 1769, as an exercise with respect to a visit to Barbadoes hath been weighty on my mind, I may express some of the trials which have at- tended me, under which I have at times rejoiced that I have felt my own self-will subjected. " Some years ago I retailed rum, sugar, and molasses, the fruits of the labor of slaves, but had not then much concern about them save only that the rum might be used in modera- tion; nor was this concern so weightily attended to as I now believe it ought to have been. Having of late years been further informed respecting the oppressions too generally exercised in these islands, and thinking often on the dangers there are in connections of interest and fellowship with the works of darkness (Eph. v. ii), I have felt an increasing concern to be wholly given up to the leadings o:i^ the Holy THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 297 Spirit, and it hath seemed right that my small gain from this branch of trade shotild be applied in promoting right- eousness on the earth. This was the first motion towards a visit to Barbadoes. I believed also that part of my out- ward substance should be applied in paying my passage, if I went, and providing things in a lowly way for my sub- sistence; but when the time drew near in which I believed it required of me to be in readiness, a difficulty arose which hath been a continual trial for some months past, tmder which I have, with abasement of mind from day to day, sought the Lord for instruction, having often had a feeling of the condition of one formerly, who bewailed himself be- cause the Lord hid his face from him. During these ex- ercises my heart hath often been contrite, and I have had a tender feeling of the temptations of my fellow-creatures, laboring under expensive customs not agreeable to the sim- plicity that 'there is in Christ' (2 Cor. ii. 3), and sometimes in the renewings of gospel love I have been helped to min- ister to others. "That which hath so closely engaged my mind, in seeking to the Lord for instruction, is, whether, after the full information I have had of the oppression which the slaves lie under who raise the West India produce, which I have gained by reading a caution and warning to Great Britain and her colonies, written by Anthony Benezet, it is right for me to take passage in a vessel employed in the West India trade. " To trade freely with oppressors without laboring to dissuade them from such unkind treatment, and to seek for gain by such traffic, tends, I believe, to make them more easy respecting their conduct than they v/ould be if the cause of mniversal righteousness was humbly and firmly attended to hy those in general with whom they have commerce; and that complaint of the Lord by hi-s prophet, " They have strengthened the hands of the wicked," hath very often re- vived in my mind- I may here add some circumstances which occurred to me before I had any pTospect of a visit ^here. David longsd for some water in a well beyond an army of Philistines who were at war widi Is-rael, and some of his men, to please him, ventured their lives in passing through this army, and brought l^a-t water. 298 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN "It (3otli not appear that the Israelites were then scarce of water, but rather that David gave way to delicacy of taste; and having reflected on the danger to which these men had been exposed, he considered this water as their blood, and his heart smote him that he could not drink it, but he poureid it out to the Lord. The oppression of the slaves which I have seen in several journeys southward on this continent, and the report of their treatment in the West Indies, have deeply affected me, and a care to live in the spirit of peace and minister no just carse of offence to my fellow-creatures having from tim.e to time livingly revived in my mind, I have for some years past declined to gratify my palate with those sugars. "I do not censure my brethren in these things, but I be- lieve the Father of Mercies, to whom all mankind by creation are equally related, hath heard the groans of this oppressed people and that he is preparing some to have a tender feeling of their condition. Trading in or the frequent use of any produce known to be raised by the labor of those who are under such lamentable oppression hath appeared to be a subject which may hereafter require the more serious con- sideration of the humble followers of Christ, the Prince of Peace. "After long and mournful exercise I am now free to mention how things have opened in my mind, v/ith desires that if it may please the Lord further to open his will to any of his children in this matter they may faithfully follow him in such further manifestation. " The number of those who decline the use of West India produce, on account of the hard usage of the slaves who raise it, appears small, even among people truly pious ; and the labors in Christian love on that subject of those who do are not very extensive. Were the trade from this continent to the West Indies to be stopped at once, I believe many there would suffer for want of bread. Did we on this con- tinent and the inhabitants of the West Indies generally dwell in pure righteousness, I believe a small trade between us might be right. Under these considerations, when the thoughts of wholly declining the use of trading-vessels and ol trying to hire a vessel to go under ballast have arisen THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 299 in my mind, I have believed that the labors in gospel love hitherto bestowed in the cause of universal righteousness have not reached that height. If the trade to the West Indies were no more than was consistent with pure wisdom, I be- lieve the passage-money v/ould for good reasons be higher than it is now; and therefore, under deep exercise of mind, I have believed that I should not take advantage of this great trade and small passage-money, but, as a testimony in favor of less trading, should pay more than is common for others to pay if I go at this tim.e." The first-mentioned owner, having read the paper, went with me to the other ov/ner, who also read over the paper, and we had some solid conversation, under which I felt my- self bowed in reverence before the Most High. At length one of them asked me if I would go and see the vessel. But not having clearness in my mind to go, I went to my lodging and retired in private under great exercise of mind; and my tears were poured out before the Lord with inward cries that he would graciously help me under these trials, I believe my mind was resigned, but I did not feel clearness to proceed; and my own weakness and the necessity of Divine instruction were impressed upon me. I was for a tim.e as one who knew not what to do and was tossed as in a tempest; under which affliction the doc- trine of Christ, " Take no thought for the m.orrow," arose livingly before me, and I was favored to get into a good degree of stillness. Having been near two days in town, I believed my obedience to my Heavenly Father consisted in returning homeward; I therefore went over among Friends on the Jersey shore and tarried till the morning on which the vessel was appointed to sail. As I lay in bed the latter part of that night my mind v/as comforted, and I felt what I esteemed a fresh confirmation that it v^^as the Lord's will that I should pass through some further exer- cises near home; so I went thither, and still felt like a so- journer with my family. In the fresh spring of pure love I had some labors in a private way zmong Friends on a subject relating to truth's testimony, under v/hich I had frequently been exercised in heart for some years. I re- member, as I walked on the road under this exercise, that 300 THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN passage in Ezekiel came fresh upon me, " Whithersoever their faces were turned thither they went." And I was graciously helped to discharge my duty in the fear and dread of the Almighty. In the course of a few weeks it pleased the Lord to visit me with a pleurisy; and after I had lain a few days and felt the disorder very grievous, I was thoughtful how it might end. I had of late, through various exercises, been much weaned from the pleasant things of this life; and I now thought if it were the Lord's will to put an end to my labors and graciously to receive me into the arms of his mercy, death would be acceptable to me; but if it were his will further to refine me under affliction, and to make me in any degree useful in his church, I desired not to die. I may with thankfulness say that in this case I felt resignedness wrought in me and had no inclination to send for a doctor, believing, if it were the Lord's will through outward means to raise me up, some sympathizing Friends would be sent to minister to me; which accordingly was the case. But though I was carefully attended, yet the disorder was at times so heavy that I had no expectation of recovery. One night in par- ticular my bodily distress was great; my feet grew cold, and the cold increased up my legs towards my body ; at that time I had no inclination to ask my nurse to apply anything v^rarm to my feet, expecting my end w^as near. After I had Iain near ten hours in this condition, I closed my eyes, think- ing whether I might now be delivered out of the body; but in these awful moments my mind was livingly opened to behold the church; and strong engagements were begotten in me for the everlasting well-being of my fellow-creatures. I felt in the spring of pure love that I might remain some time longer in the body, to fill up according to my measure that which remains of the afflictions of Christ, and to labor for the good of the church; after which I requested my nurse to apply warmth to my feet, and I revived. The next night, feeling a weighty exercise of spirit and having a solid friend sitting up with me, I requested him to write what I said, which he did as follows: — "Fourth day of the first month, 1770, about five in the msming.— I have seen in the Light of the Lord that the day THE JOURNAL OF JOHN WOOLMAN 301 Is approaching when the man that is most wise in human poHcy shall be the greatest fool ; and the arm that is mighty to support injustice shall be broken to pieces; the enemies of righteousness shall make a terrible rattle, and shall mightily torment one another; for He that is omnipotent is rising up to judgment, and will plead the cause of the op- pressed; and He commanded me to open the vision." Near a week after this, feeling my mind livingly opened, I sent for a neighbor, who, at my request, wrote as follows : — *' The place of prayer is a precious habitation*; for I now saw that the prayers of the saints were precious incense; and a trumpet was given to me that I might sound forth this language ; that the children might hear it and be invited together to this precious habitation, where the prayers of the saints, as sweet incense, arise before the throne of God and the Lamb. I saw this habitation to be safe, — to be inwardly quiet when there were great stirrings and commotions in the world. " Prayer, at this day, in pure resignation, is a precious place: the trumpet is sounded; the call goes forth to the church that she gather to the place of pure inward prayer; and her habitation is safe." CHAPTER XI 1772 Embarks at Chester, witli Samtiel Emlen, in a Ship bound for Lon- the greatest Wisdom and Work of Life. To come but once into the World, and Trifle away our true Enjoyment of it, and of our selves in it, is lamentable indeed. This one Refieetioa would yield a thinking Person great Instruc- 333 334 THE PREFACE tion. And since nothing below Man can so Think; Man, in being Thoughtless, must needs fall below himself. And that, to be sure, such do, as are unconcern'd in the Use of their most Precious Time. This is but too evident, if we will allow our selves to consider, that there 's hardly any Thing we take by the Right End, or improve to its just Advantage. V7e understand little of the Works of God, either in Nature or Grace. We pursue False Knowledge, and Mistake Educa- tion extreamly. We are violent in our Affections, Confused and Immethodical in our whole Life ; making That a Burthen, which was given for a Blessing ; and so of little Comfort to our selves or others ; Misapprehending the true Notion of Happiness, and so missing of the Right Use of Life, and Way of happy Living, And till we are perswaded to stop, and step a little aside, out of the noisy Crowd and Incumbering Hurry of the World, and Calmly take a Prospect of Things, it will be impossible we should be able to make a right Judgment of our Selves or know our own Misery. But after we have made the just Reckonings which Retirement will help us to, we shall begin to think the World in great measure Mad, and that v^e have been in a sort of Bedlam all this while. Reader, whether Young or Old, think it not too soon or too late to turn over the Leaves of thy past Life: And be sure to fold down where any Passage of it may affect thee ° And bestow thy Remainder of Time, to correct those Faults in thy future Conduct; Be it in Relation to this or the next life. What thou wouldst do, if what thou hast done were to do again, be sure to do as long as thou livest, upon the like Ccca,sions. Our Resolutions seem to be Vigorous, as often as we reflect upon our past Errors ; But, Alas ! they are apt to flat again upon fresh Temptations to the same Things. The Author does not pretend to deliver thee an Exact Piece ; his Business not being Ostentation, but Charity. 'T is Miscel- laneous in the Matter of it, and by no means Artificial in the Composure. But it contains Hints, that it may serve thee for Texts to Preach to thy Self upon, and which comxprehend Much of the Course of Human Life: Since whether thou art Parent or Child, Prince or Subject, Master or Servant, Single or Married, THE PREFACE 335 Publick or Private, Mean or Honorable, Rich or Poor, Prosperous or Improsperous, in Peace or Controversy, in Business or Solitude; Wbarever be thy Inclination or Aversion, Practice or Duty, thou wilt find something not unsuitably said for thy Direction and Ad- vantage. Accept and Improve what deserves thy Notice; The rest excuse, and place to account of good Will to Thee and the whole Creation of God. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE IN REFLECTIONS AND MAXIMS PART I IGNORANCE IT IS admirable to consider how many Millions of People come into, and go out of the World, Ignorant of them- selves, and of the World they have lived in. 2« If one went to see Windsor-Castle, or Hampton-Court, it would be strange not to observe and remember the Situ- ation, the Building, the Gardens, Fountains, &c. that make up the Beauty and Pleasure of such a Seat? And yet few People know themselves; No, not their own Bodies, the Houses of their Minds, the most curious Structure of the World; a living walking Tabernacle: Nor the World of which it \\^as made, and out of which it is fed ; which would be so much our Benefit, as well as our Pleasure, to know. We cannot doubt of this when we. are told that the Invisible Things of God are brought to light by the Things that are seen; and consequently we read our Duty in them as often as v/e look upon them, to him that is the Great and Wise Author of them, if we look as we should do. 3. The World is certainly a great and stately Volume of natural Things ; and may be not improperly styled the Hiero- glyphicks of a better : But, alas ! how very fev/ Leaves of it do we seriously turn over ! This ought to be the Subject of the Education of our Youth, who, at Twenty, when they should he fit for Business, know little or nothing of it. EDUCATION 4. We are in Pain to make them Scholars*, but not Men I To talk, rather than to know^ which is true Canting, 338 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 5. The first Thing obvious to Children is what is sensible ; and that we make no Part of their rudiments. 6. We press their Memory too soon, and puzzle, strain, and load them with Words and Rules; to know Grammer and Rhetorick, and a strange Tongue or tv^^o, that it is ten to one may never be useful to them; Leaving their natural Genius to Mechanical and Physical, or natural Knowledge uncultivated and neglected; w^hich would be of exceeding Use and Pleasure to them through the whole Course of their Life. 7. To be sure, Languages are not to be despised or neg- lected. But Things are still to be preferred. 8. Children had rather be making of Tools and Instru- ments of Play; Shaping, Drawing, Framing, and Building, &c. than getting some Rules of Propriety of Speech by Heart : And those also would follow with more Judgment, and less Trouble and Time. 9. It were Happy if we studied Nature more in natural Things ; and acted according to Nature ; whose rules are few, plain and most reasonable. 10. Let us begin where she begins, go her Pace, and close always where she ends, and we cannot miss of being good Naturalists. 11. The Creation would not be longer a Riddle to us: The Heavens, Earth, and Waters, with their respective, various and numerous Inhabitants: Their Productions, Natures, Seasons, Sympathies and Antipathies ; their Use, Benefit and Pleasure, would be better understood by us : And an eternal Wisdom, Power, Majesty, and Goodness, very conspicuous to us, thro' those sensible and passing Forms: The World wearing the Mark of its Maker, whose Stamp is everywhere visible, and the Characters very legible to the Children of Wisdom. 12. And it would go a great way to caution and direct People in their Use of the World, that they were better studied and known in the Creation of it. 13. For how could Man find the Confidence to abuse it, while they should see the Great Creator stare them in the Face, in all and every part thereof? 14. Their Ignorance makes them insensible, and that In- SSOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDB 3S9 sensibility liardy in misusing this noble Creation, that has the Stamp and Voice of a Deity every where, and in every Thing to the Observing. 15. It is pity therefore that Books have not been composed for Youth, by some curious and careful Naturalists, and also Mechanicks, in the Latin Tongue, to be used in Schools, that they might learn Things with Words: Things obvious and familiar to them, and which would make the Tongue easier to be obtained by them. 16. Many able Gardiners and Husbandmen are yet Ignorant of the Reason of their Calling; as most Arti- ficers are of the Reason of their own Rules that govern their excellent Workmanship. But a Naturalist and Me- chanick of this sort is Master of the Reason of both, and might be of the Practice too, if his Industry kept pace with his Speculation; which were very commxcndable ; and without which he cannot be said to be a complete Natural- ist or Mechanick. 17. Finally, if Man be the Index or Epitomy of the World, as Philosophers tell us, we have only to read our selves well to be learned in it. But because there is nothing we less re- gard than the Characters of the Power that made us, which are so clearly written upon us and the World he has given us, and can best tell us what we are and should be, we are even Strangers to our own Genius : The Glass in which we should see that true instructing and agreeable Variety, which is to be observed in Nature, to the Adm.iration of that V/isdom and Adoration of that Power which made us all. PRIDE 18. And yet we are very apt to be full of our selves, in- stead of Him that made what v/e so much value ; and, but for whom v/e can have no Reason to value our selves. For we have nothing that we can call our own; no, not our selves: For we are all but Tenants, and at Will too, of the great Lord of our selves, and the rest of this great Farm, the World that we live upon. 19. But methinks we cannot answer it to our Strives as well as our Maker, that we should live and die ignorant of our 340 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE Selves, and thereby of Him and the Obligations we are tindef to Him for our Selves. 20. If the worth of a Gift sets the Obligation, and directs the return of the Party that receives it; he that is ignorant of it, will be at a loss to value it and the Giver, for it. 21. Here is Man in his Ignorance of himself. He knows not how to estimate his Creator^ because he knows not how to value his Creation. If we consider his Make, and lovely Compositure; the several Stories of his lovely Structure. His divers Mem-bers, their Order, Function and Dependency r The Instruments of Food, the Vessels of Digestion, the sev- eral Transmutations it passes. And how Nourishment is car- ried and diffused throughout the whole Body, by most innate and imperceptible Passages. How the Animal Spirit is thereby refreshed, and with an unspeakable Dexterity and Motion sets all Parts at work to feed themselves. And last of all, how the Rational Soul is seated in the Animal, as its proper House, as is the Animal in the Body: I say if this rare Fabrick alone were but considered by us, with all the rest by which it is fed and comforted, surely Man would have a more reverent Sense of the Power, Wisdom and Good- ness of God, and of that Duty he owes to Him for it. But if he would be acquainted with his own Soul, its noble Facul- ties, its Union with the Body, its Nature and End, and the Providences by which the whole Frame of Hum-anlty is pre- served, he would Admire and Adore his Good and Great God. But Man is become a strange Contradiction to himiself ; but it is of himself; Not being by Constitution, but Corruption, such. 22. He would have others obey him, even his own kind; but he will not obey God, that is so much above him, and who made him. 23. He will lose none of his Authority; no, not bate an Ace of It ; He is humorous^ to his Wife, he beats his Children, is angry with his Servants, strict with his Neighbors, re- venges all Affronts to Extremity; but, alas, forgets ail the while that he is the Man ; and is more in Arrear to God, that !s so very patient with him, than they are to him with whom he is so strict and impatient. ^ Capricious. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 341 24. He is curious to wash, dress, and perfume his Body, but careless of his Soul. The one shall have many Hours, the other not so many Minutes. This shall have three or four new Suits in a Year, but that must wear its old Cloaths still. 25. If he be to receive or see a great Man, how nice and anxious is he that all things be in order? And with what Respect and Address does he approach and make his Court? But to God, how dry and formal and constrained in his Devotion ? 26. In his Prayers he says, Thy Will be done: But mieans his own : At least acts so. 2y. It is too frequent to begin with God and end v/ith the World. But He is the good Man's Beginning and End; his Alpha and Omega. LUXURY 28. Such is now become our Delicacy, that we will not eat ordinary Meat, nor drink small, pall'd^ Liquor ; v/e must have the best, and the best cook'd for our Bodies, while our Souls feed on empty or corrupted Things. 29. In short, Man is spending all upon a bare House, and hath little or no Furniture within to recommend it; which is preferring the Cabinet before the Jewel, a Lease of seven Years before an Inheritance. So absurd a thing is Man, after all his proud Pretences to Wit and Understanding. INCONSIDERATION 30. The want of due Consideration is the Cause of all the Unhappiness Man brings upon himself. For his second Thoughts rarely agree with his first, which pass not without a considerable Retrenchment or Correction. And yet that sensible Warning is, too frequently, not Precaution enough for his future Conduct. 31. Well may v/e say our Infelicity is of our selves; since there is nothing we do that we should not do, but we know k, and yet do it. a Stale. 342 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE DISAPPOINTMENT AND RESIGNATION 32. For Disappointments, that come not by our own Folly, they are the Tryals or Corrections of Heaven : And it is our own Fault, if they prove not our Advantage. 33. To repine at them does not mend the Matter : It is only to grumble at our Creator. But to see the Hand of God in them, with an humble submission to his Will, is the Way to turn our Water into Wine, and engage the greatest Love and Mercy on our side. 34. We must needs disorder our selves, if we only look at our Losses. But if we consider how little we deserve what is left, our Passion will cool, and our Murmurs will turn into Thankfulness. 35. If our Hairs fall not to the Ground, less do we or our Substance without God's Providence. 36. Nor can we fall below the Arms of God, how lov/ so- ever it be we fall. 37. For though our Saviour's Passion is over, his Com- passion is not. That never fails his humble, sincere Dis- ciples : In him, they find more than all that they lose in the World. MURMURING 38. Is it reasonable to take it ill, that any Body desires o£ las that which is their own ? All we have is the Almighty's : [And shall not God have his own when he calls for it ? 39. Discontentedness is not only in such a Case Ingrati- tude, but Injustice. For we are both unthankful for the time we had it, and not honest enough to restore it, if v/e could keep it. 40. But it is hard for us to look on things in such a Glass, and at such a Distance from this low World; and yet it is our Duty, and would be our Wisdom and our Glory to do so. CENSORIOUSNESS 41. We are apt to be very pert at censuring others, where we will not endure advice our selves. And nothing shews our Weakness more than to be so sharp-sighted at spying other Men's Faults: and so purblind about our own. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 343 42. When the Actions of a Neighbor are upon the Stage, we can have all our Wits about us, are so quick and critical we can split an Hair, and find out ever Failure and In- firmity : But are without feeling, or have but very little Sense of our own. 43. Much of this comes from 111 Nature, as well as from an inordinate Value of our selves: For we love Rambling better than home, and blaming the unhappy, rather than cov- ering and relieving them. 44. In such Occasions some shew their Malice, and are witty upon Misfortunes ; others their Justice, they can reflect a pace: But fev/ or none their Charity; especially if it be about Money Matters. 45. You shall see an old Miser come forth with a set Gravity, and so much Severity against the distressed, to ex- cuse his Purse, that he v/ill, e'er he has done, put it out of all Question, That Riches is Righteousness with him. This, says he, is the Fruit of your Prodigality (as if, poor Man, Covetousness were no Fault) Or, of your Projects, or grasp- ing after a great Trade : While he himself would have done the same thing, but that he had not the Courage to venture so much ready Money out of his own trusty Hands, though it had been to have brought him back the Indies in return. But the Proverb is just. Vice should not correct Sin. 46. They have a Right to censure, that have a Heart to help : The rest is Cruelty, not Justice. BOUNDS OF CHARITY 47. Lend not beyond thy Ability, nor refuse to lend out of thy Ability; especially when it will help others more than it can hurt thee. 48. If thy Debtor be honest and capable, thou hast thy Mony again, if not with Encrease, with Praise: If he prove insolvent, don't ruin him to get that, v/hich it will not ruin thee to lose : For thou art but a Steward, and another is thy Owner, Master and Judge. 49. The more merciful Acts thou dost, the more Mercy thou wilt receive; and if with a charitable Imployment of thy Temporal Riches, thou gainest eternal Treasure, thy Pur- 344 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE chase is infinite: Thou wilt have found the Art of Multi- plying^ indeed. FRUGALITY OR BOUNTY 50. Frugality is good if Liberality be join'd v/ith it The first is leaving off superfluous Expences; the last bestowing them to the Benefit of others that need. The first without the last begins Covetousness ; the last without the first begins Prodigality: Both together make an excellent Temper. Happy the Place where ever that is found. 51. Were it universal, we should be Cur'd of two Ex- treams. Want and Excess: and the one would supply the other, and so bring both nearer to a Mean; the just Degree of earthly Happiness. 52. It is a Reproach to Religion and Governm.ent to suffer so much Poverty and Excess. 53. V/ere the Superfluities of a Nation valued^ and made a perpetual Tax or Benevolence, there would be more Alms- houses than Poor; Schools than Scholars; and enough to spare for Government besides. 54. Hospitality is good, if the poorer sort are the subjects of our Bounty; else too near a Superfluity. DISCIPLINE 55. If thou wouldst he happy and easie in thy Family, above all things observe Discipline. 56. Every one in it should know their Duty; and there should be a Time and Place for every thing; and whatever else is done or omitted, be sure to begin and end with God. INDUSTRY 57. Love Labor: For if thou dost not want it for Food, thou rnayest for Physick. It is wholesom for thy Body, and good for thy Mind. It prevents the Fruits of Idleness, which many times comes of nothing to do, and leads too many to do what is worse tkan nothing. 58. A Garden, an Elaboratory, a Work-house, Improve- ®The term used by the alchemists for increasing the precious metals. SOMB FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 345 ments and Breeding, are pleasant and Profitable Diversions to the Idle and Ingenious: For here they miss 111 Company, and converse with Nature and Art; whose Variety are equally grateful and instructing; and preserve a good Con- stitution of Body and Mind. TEMPERANCE 59. To this a spare Diet contributes much. Eat therefore to live, and do not live to eat. That's like a Man, but this below a Beast. 60. Have wholesome, but not costly Food, and be rather cleanly than dainty in ordering it. 61. The Receipts of Cookery are swell'd to a Volume, but a good Stomach excels them all; to v/hich nothing contrib- utes more than Industry and Temperance. 62. It is a cruel Folly to offer up to Ostentation so many Lives of Creatures; as make up the State of our Treats; as it is a prodigal one to spend more in Sawce than in Meat. 63. The Proverb says. That enough is as good as a Feast: But it is certainly better, if Superfluity be a Fault, which never fails to be at Festivals. 64. If thou rise with an Appetite, thou art sure never to sit down without one. 65. Rarely drink but when thou art dry; nor then, be- tween Meals, if it can be avoided. 66. The smaller* the Drink, the clearer the Head, and the cooler the Blood; which are great Benefits in Temper and Business. 6y. Strong Liquors are good at some Times, and in small Proportions; being better for Physick than Food, for Cor- dials than comm.on Use. 68. The most common things are the most useful; which shews both the Wisdom and Goodness of the great Lord of the Family of the World. 69. What therefore he has made rare, don't thou use too commonly : Lest thou shouldest invert the Use and Order of things; become Wanton and Voluptuous; and thy Blessings prove a Curse. 4 Weaker. 346 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 70. Let nothing be lost, said our Saviour. But that is lost that is misused. 71. Neither urge another to that thou v/ouldst be unwilling to do thy self, nor do thy self what looks to thee unseemly, and intemperate in another. 'J2. All Excess is ill: But Drunkenness is of the worst Sort. It spoils Health, dismounts the Mind, and unmans Men: It reveals Secrets, is Quarrelsome, Lascivious, Impu- dent, Dangerous and Mad. In fine, he that is drunk is not a Man: Because he is so long void of Reason, that distin- guishes a Man from a Beast. APPAREL 73. Excess in Apparel is another costly Folly. The very Trimming of the vain World would cloath all the naked one. 74. Chuse thy Cloaths by thine own Eyes, not another's. The more plain and simple they are, the better. Neither un- shapely, nor fantastical; and for Use and Decency, and not for Pride. 75. If thou art clean and warm, it is sufficient; for more doth but rob the Poor, and please the Wanton. ^(i. It is said of the true Church, the King's Daughter is all glorious within. Let our Care therefore be of our Minds more than of our Bodies, if we would be of her Com.munion. yy. Y\fe are told with Truth, that Meekness and Modesty are the Rich and Charming Attire of the Soul: And the plainer the Dress, the more Distinctly, and with greater Lustre, their Beauty shines. 78. It is great Pity such Beauties are so rare, and those of Jezebel's Forehead are so common: Whose Dresses are In- centives to Lust ; but Bars instead of Motives, to Love or Vertue. RIGHT MARRIAGE 79. Never Marry but for Love; but see that thou lov'st what is lovely. 80. If Love be not thy chiefest Motive, thou wilt soon grow weary of a Married State, and stray from thy Promise^ to search out thy Pleasures in forbidden Places. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 347 8i. Let not Enjoyment lessen, but augment Affection; it being the basest of Passions to like when we have not, what Vv'e slight when we possess. S2. It is the difference betwixt Lust and Love, that this is fixt, that volatile. Love grows, Lust wastes by Enjoyment: And the Reason is, that one springs from an Union of Souls, and the other from an Union of Sense. 83. They have Divers Originals, and so are of different Families: That inward and deep, this superficial; this tran- sient, and that parmanent. 84. They that Marr}^ for Money cannot have the trtie Sat- isfaction of Marriage; the requisite Means being wanting. 85. Men are generally more careful of the Breed of their Horses and Dogs than of their Children. 86. Those must be of the best Sort, for Shape, Strength, Courage and good Conditions: But as for these, their own Posterit}^, Money shall answer all Things. With such, it makes the Crooked Streight, sets Squint-Eyes Right, cures Madness, covers Folly, changes ill Conditions, mends the Skin, gives a sweet Breath, repairs Honors, makes Young, works Wonders. 87. O how sordid is Man grown ! Man, the noblest Crea- ture in the World, as a God on Earth, and the Image of him that made it ; thus to mistake Earth for Heaven, and worship Gold for God ! AVARICE 88. Covetousness is the greatest of Monsters, as well as the Root of all Evil. I have once seen the Man that dyed to save Charges. W^hat ! Give Ten Shillings to a Doctor, and have an Apothecary's Bill besides, that m_ay come to I know not what ! No, not he : Valuing Life less than Twenty Shillings. But indeed such a Man could not well set too low a Price upon himself ; who, though he liv'd up to the Chin in Bags, had rather die than find in his Heart to open one of them, to help to save his Life. 89. Such a Man is felo de se^ and deserves not Christian Burial. 90. He is a common Nusance, a Weyer* cross the Stream^ 'A suicide. 'Dam. 348 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE that stops the Current: An Obstruction, to be remov'd by a Purge of the Law. The only Gratification he gives his Neighbors, is to let them see that he himself is as little the better for what he has, as they are. For he always looks like Lent; a Sort of Lay Minim.^ In some Sense he may be compared to Pharoah's lean Kine, for ail that he has does him no good. He com.monly wears his Cloaths till they leave him, or that no Body else can wear them. He affects to be thought poor, to escape Robbery and Taxes : And by looking as if he wanted an Alms, excusing himself from giving any. He ever goes late to Markets, to cover buying the worst: But does it because that is cheapest. He lives of the Offal. His Life were an insupportable Punishment to any Temper but his own : And no greater Torment to him on Earth, than to live as other Men do. But the Misery of his Pleasure is, that he is never satisfied with getting, and always in Fear of losing what he cannot use. 91. How vilely has he lost himself, that becomes a Slave to his Servant, and exalts him to the Dignity of his Maker ! Gold is the God, the Wife, the Friend of the Money-Monger of the World. 92. But in Marriage do thou be wise; prefer the Person before Money; Vertue before Beauty, the Mind before the Body: Then thou hast a Wife, a Friend, a Companion, a Second Self; one that bears an equal Share with thee in all thy Toyls and Troubles. 93. Chuse one that Measures her satisfaction, Safety and Danger, by thine; and of whom thou art sure, as of thy secretest Thoughts: A Friend as well as a Wife, v/hich in- deed a Wife implies : For she is but half a Wife that is not, or is not capable of being such a Friend. 94. Sexes make no Difference; since in Souls there is none: And they are the Subjects of Friendship. 95. He that minds a Body and not a Soul, has not the better Part of that Relation ; and will consequently want the Noblest Comfort of a Married Life. 96. The Satisfaction of our Senses is low, short, and transient: But the Mind gives a more raised and extended Pleasure, and is capable of an Happiness founded upon ' One of an order of monks pledged to the observance o£ perpetual Lent. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 349 Reason; not bounded and limited by the Circumstances that Bodies are confin'd to. 97. Here it is we ought to search out our Pleasure, where the Field is large and full of Variety, and of an induring Nature: Sickness, Poverty, or Disgrace, being not able to shake it, because it is not under the moving Influences of Worldly Contingencies. 98. The Satisfaction of those that do so is in well-doing, and in the Assurance they have of a future Reward: That they are best loved of those they love most, and that they enjoy and value the Liberty of their Minds above that of their Bodies; having the whole Creation for their Prospect, the most Noble and Wonderful Works and Providences of God, the Histories of the Antients, and in them the Actions and Examples of the Vertuous; and lastly, themselves, their Affairs and Family, to exercise their Minds and Friendship upon. 99. Nothing can be more entire and without Reserve; nothing more zealous, affectionate and sincere ; nothing more contented and constant than such a Couple; nor no greater temporal Felicity than to be one of them. 100. Between a Man and his Wife nothing ought to rule but Love. Authority is for Children and Servants; yet not without Sweetness. loi. As Love ought to bring them together, so it is the best Way to keep them well together. 102. Wherefore use her not as a Servant, whom thou would'st, perhaps, have serv'd Seven Years to have ob- tained. 103. An Husband and Wife that love and value one an- other, shew their Children and Servants, That they should do so too. Others visibly lose their Authority in their Families by their Contempt of one another; and teach their Children to be unnatnral by their own Example. 104. It is a general Fault, not to be more careful to pre- serve Nature in Children; who, at least in the second De- scent, hardly have the Feeling of their Relation ; which must be an unpleasant Reflection to aft'ectionate Parents. 105. Frequent Visits, Presents, intimate Correspondence and Intermarriages within allowed Bounds, are Means of 350 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE keeping up the Concern and Affection that Nature requires from Relations. FRIENDSHIP io6. Friendship is the next Pleasure we may hope for: And where we find it not at home, or have no home to find it in, we may seek it abroad. It is an Union of Spirits, a Mar- riage of Hearts, and the Bond thereof Vertue. 107. There can be no Friendship where there is no Free- dom. Friendship loves a free Air, and will not be penned up in streight and narrow Enclosures. It will speak freely, and act so too; and take nothing ill where no ill is meant; nay, where it is, 'twill easily forgive, and forget too, upon small Acknowledgm.ents. 108. Friends are true Twins in Soul; they Sympathize in every thing, and have the Love and Aversion. 109. One is not happy without the other, nor can either of them be miserable alone. As if they could change Bodies, they take their turns in Pain as well as in Pleasure; reliev- ing one another in their most adverse Conditions, no. What one enjoys, the other cannot "Want. Like the Primitive Christians, they have all things in common, and no Property but in one another. QUALITIES OF A FRIEND 111. A true Friend unbosoms freely, advises justly, assists readily, adventures boldly, takes all patiently, defends cour- ageously, and continues a Friend unchangeably. 112. These being the Qualities of a Friend, we are to find them before we chuse one. 113. The Covetous, the Angry, the Proud, the Jealous, the Talkative, cannot but make ill Friends, as well as the False. 114. In short, chuse a Friend as thou dost a Wife, till Death seperate you. 115. Yet be not a Friend beyond the Altar: but let Virtue bound thy Friendship : Else it is not Friendship, but an Evil Confederacy. 116. If my Brother or Kinsman will be my Friend, I ought SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 351 to prefer him before a Stranger, or I shew little Duty or Nature to my Parents. 117. And as we ought to prefer our Kindred in Point of Affection, so too in Point of Charity, if equally needing and deserving. CAUTION AND CONDUCT 118. Be not easily acquainted, lest finding Reason to cool, thou makest an Enemy instead of a good Neighbor. 119. Be Reserved, but not Sour; Grave, but not Formal; Bold, but not Rash; Humble, but not Servile; Patient, not Insensible; Constant, not Obstinate; Chearful, not Light; Rather Sweet than Familiar; Familiar, than Intim^ate; and Intimate with very few, and upon very good Grounds. 120. Return the Civilities thou receivest, and be grateful for Favors. REPARATION 121. If thou hast done an Injury to another, rather own it than defend it. One way thou gainest Forgiveness, the other, thou doubl'st the Wrong and Reckoning. 122. Some oppose Honor to Submission: But it can be no Honor to maintain, what it is dishonorable to do. 123. To confess a Fault, that is none, out of Fear, is in- deed m.ean: But not to be afraid of standing in one, is Brutish. 124. We should make more Haste to Right our Neighbor, than we do to wrong him, and instead of being Vindicative, we should leave him to be Judge of his own Satisfaction. 125. True Honor will pay treble Damages, rather than justifie one wrong with another. 126. In such Controversies, it is but too common for some to say. Both are to blame, to excuse their own Unconcerned- ness, v/hich is a base Neutrality. Others will cry, They are both alike; thereby involving the Injured with the Guilty, to mince the Matter for the Faulty, or cover their own In- justice to the wronged Party. 127. Fear and Gain are great Perverters of Mankind, and where either prevail, the Judgment is violated. 3S2 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE RULES OF CONVERSATION 128. Avoid Company where it is not profitable or neces- sary; and in those Occasions speak little, and last. 129. Silence is Wisdom, where Speaking is Folly ; and always safe, 130. Some are so Foolish as to interrupt and anticipate those that speak, instead of hearing and thinking before they answer ; which is uncivil as well as silly. 131. If thou thinl<:est twice, before thou speakest once, thou wilt speak twice the better for it. 132. Better say nothing than not to the Purpose. And to speak pertinently, consider both what is fit, and when it is fit to speak. 133. In all Debates, let Truth be thy Aim, not Victory, or an unjust Interest: And endeavor to gain, rather than to expose thy Antagonist. 134. Give no Advantage in Argument, nor lose any that is offered. This is a Benefit which arises from Temper. 135. Don't use thy self to dispute against thine own Judg- ment, to shew Wit, lest it prepare thee to be too indifferent about what is Right : Nor against another Man, to vex him, or for mere Trial of Skill ; since to inform, or to be informed, ought to be the End of all Conferences. 136. Men are too apt to be concerned for their Credit, more than for the Cause. ELOQUENCE 137. There is a Truth and Beauty in Rhetorick; but it oftener serves ill Turns than good ones. 138. Elegancy, is a good Meen and Address given to Matter, be it by proper or figurative Speech: V/here the Words are apt, and allusions very natural, Certainly it has a moving Grace: But it is too artificial for Simplicity, and oftentimes for Truth. The Danger is, lest it delude the Weak, who in such Cases may mistake the Handmaid for the Mistress, if not Error for Truth. 139. 'T is certain Truth is least indebted to it, because she has least need of it, and least uses it. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 353 140. But it is a reprovable Delicacy in them, that despise Truth in plain Cloths. 141. Such Luxuriants have but false Appetites; like those Gluttons, that by Sawces force them, where they have no Stomach, and Sacrifice to their Pallate, not their Health: Which cannot be without great Vanity, nor That without some Sin. TEMPER 142. Nothing does Reason more Right, than the Coolness of those that offer it: For Truth often suffers more by the Heat of its Defenders, than from the Arguments of its Opposers. 143. Zeal ever follows an Appearance of Truth, and the Assured are too apt to be warm; but 't is their weak aide in Argument; Zeal being better shewn against Sin, than Persons or their Mistakes. TRUTH 144. Where thou art Obliged to speak, be sure speak the Truth: For Equivocation is half way to Lying, as Lying, the whole way to Hell. JUSTICE 145. Believe nothing against another but upon good Au- thority: Nor report what may hurt anotherj unless it be a greater hurt to others to conceal it. SECRECY 246. It is wise not to seek a Secret, and honest not to reveal one. 147. Only trust thy self, and another shall not betray thee. 148. Openness has the Mischief, though not the Malice of Treachery. COMPLACENCY 149. Never assent merely to please others. For that is, besides Flattery, oftentimes Untruth; and discovers a Mind liable to be servile and base: Nor contradict to vex others^ 12 HC— Vol. 1 354 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE for that shows an ill Temper, and provokes, btit profits no Body. SHIFTS 150. Do not accuse others to excuse thy self; for that is neither Generous nor Just. But let Sincerity and Ingenuity be thy Refuge, rather than Craft and Falsehood: for Cun- ning borders very near upon Knavery. 151. Wisdom never uses nor wants it. Cunning to Wise, is as an Ape to a Man. INTEREST 152. Interest has the Security, tho' not the Virtue of a Principle. As the World gees 't is the surer side ; For Men daily leave both Relations and Religion to follow it. 153. 'T is an odd Sight, but very evident, That Families and Nations, of cross Religions and Humors unite against those of their own, where they find an Interest to do it. 154. We are tied down by our Senses to this World; and where that is in Question, it can be none with Worldly Men, whether they should not forsake all other Considerations for it. INQUIRY 155. Have a care of Vulgar Error?, Dislike, as well as Allov/ Reasonably. 156. Inquiry is Human; Blind Obedience Brutal. Truth never loses by the one, but often suffers by the other. 157. The usefulest Truths are plainest: And while we keep to them, our Differences cannot rise high. 158. There may be a Wantonness in Search, as well as a Stupidity in Trusting. It is great Wisdom equally to avoid the Extreams. RIGHT-TIMING 159. Do nothing improperly. Some are Witty, Kind, Cold, ^gry, Easie, Stiff, Jealous, Careless, Cautious, Confident, Close, Open, but all in the wrong Place. 160. It is all mistaking where the Matter is of Importance. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 355 l6i. It is not enough that a thing be Right, if it be not fit to be done. If not Imprudent, tho' Just, it is not advisable. He that loses by getting, had better lose than get KNOWLEDGE 162. Knowledge is the Treasure, but Judgment the Treas- urer of a Wise Man. 163. He that has more Knowledge than Judgment, is m.ade for another Man's use more than his own. 164. It cannot be a good Constitution, where the Appetite is great and the Digestion is weak. 165. There are some Men like Dictionaries; to be lookt into upon occasions, but have no Connection, and are little entertaining. 166. Less Knowledge than Judgment will always have the advantage upon the Injudicious knowing Man. 167. A Wise Man makes what he learns his own, 'tother shows he's but a Copy, or a Collection at most. WIT 168. Wit is an happy and striking way of expressing a Thought. 169. 'Tis not often tho' it be lively and mantling, that it carries a great Body with it. 170. Wit therefore is fitter for Diversion than Business, being more grateful to Fancy than Judgment. 171. Less Judgment than Wit, is more Sale than Ballast. 172. Yet it must be confessed, that Wit gives an Edge to Sense, and recommends it extreamly. 173. Where Judgment has Wit to express it, there's the best Orator. OBEDIENCE TO PARENTS 174. If thou wouldest be obeyed, being a Father; being a Son, be Obedient. 175. He that begets thee, owes thee; and has a natural Right over thee. 176. Next to God, thy Parents ; next them, the Magistrate. 356 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 177. Remember that thou are not more indebted to tfiy Parents for thy Nature, than for thy Love and Care. 178. Rebellion therefore in Children, was made Death by God*s Law, and the next Sin to Idolatry, in the People; whl<:h is renouncing of God, the Parent of all. 179. Obedience to Parents is not only our Duty, but our Interest. If we received our Life from them. We prolong it by obeying th^m: For Obedience is the first Command- ment with Promise. 180. The Obligation is as indissolvable as the Relation. 181. If we must not disobey God to obey them; at least we must let them see, that there is nothing else in our refusal. For some unjust Commands cannot excuse the general Neg- lect of our Duty. They will be our Parents and we must be their Children still : And if we cannot act for them against God, neither can we act against them for ourselves or any^ thing else. BEARING 182. A Man in Business must put up many Affronts, if he loves his own Quiet. 183. We must not pretend to see all that we see, if we would be easie. 184. It were endless to dispute upon everything that is disputable. 185. A vindictive Temper is not only mneasie to others, but to them that have it. PROMISING 186. Rarely Promise: But, if Lawful, constantly perform. 187. Hasty Resolutions are of the Nature of Vows; and to be equally avoided. 188. I will never do this, says one, yet does it: I am re- solved to do this, says another; but flags upon second Thoughts : Or does it, tho' awkwardly, for his Word's sake : As if it were worse to break his Word, than to do amiss in keeping it, 189. Wear none of thine own Chains; but keep free, whilst thou art free. 190. It is an Effect of Passion that Wisdom corrects, to SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 357 lay thy self under Resolutions that cannot be well made, and must be worse performed. FIDELITY 191. Avoid all thou canst to be Entrusted: But do thy ut- most to discharge the Trust thou undertakest: For Careless- ness is Injurious, if not Unjust. 192. The Glory of a Servant is Fidelity; which cannot be without Diligence, as well as Truth. 193. Fidelity has Enfranchised Slaves, and Adopted Ser- vants to be Sons. 194. Reward a good Servant well: And rather quit than Disquiet thy self with an ill one. MASTER 195. Mix Kindness with Authority ; and rule more by Dis- cretion than Rigor. 196. If thy Servant be faulty, strive rather to convince him of his Error, than discover thy Passion: And when he is sensible, forgive him. 197. Remember he is thy Fellow-Creature, and that God's Goodness, not thy Merit, has made the Difference betwixt Thee and Him. 198. Let not thy Children Domineer over thy Servants: Nor suffer them to slight thy Children. 199. Suppress Tales in the general: But where a Matter requires notice, encourage the Complaint, and right the Aggrieved, 200. If a Child, he ought to Entreat, and not to Com-- mand; and if a Servant, to comply where he does not obey. 201. Tho' there should be but one Master and Mistress in a Family, yet Servants should know that Children have the Reversion. SERVANT 202. Indulge not unseemly Things in thy Master's Chil- dren, nor refuse them what is fitting : For one is the highest 358 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE Unfaithfumess, and the other. Indiscretion as \vell as Disrespect. 203. Do thine own Work honestly and chearfully: And when that is done, help thy Fellow; that so another time he may help thee. 204. If thou wilt be a Good Servant, thou must be True; and thou canst not be True if thou Defraud'st thy Master. 205. A Master may be Defrauded many ways by a servant: A.S, in Time, Care, Pains, Money, Trust. 206. But, a True Servant is the Contrary: He 's Diligent, Careful, Trusty. He Tells no Tales, Reveals no Secrets, Refuses no Pains : Not to be Tempted by Gain, nor aw'd by Fear, to Unfaithfulness. 207. Such a Servant, serves God in serving his Master; and has double Wages for his Work, to wit. Here and Hereafter. JEALOUSY 208. Be not fancifully Jealous : For that is Foolish ; as, to be reasonably so, is Wise. 209. He that superfines up another Man's Actions, cozens himself, as well as injures them. 210. To be very subtil and scrupulous in Business, is as hurtful, as being over-confident and secure. 211. In difficult Cases, such a Temper is Timorous; and in dispatch Irresolute. 212. Experience is a safe Guide: And a Practical Head, is a great Happiness in Business. POSTERITY 213. We are too careless of Posterity; not consid^riaf that as they are, so the next Generation will be. 214. If we would am^nd the World, we should mend Our selves; and teach our Children to be, not what we are, but what they should be. 215. We are too apt to awaken and turn up their Pas- sions by the Examples of our own ; and to teach them to be pleased, not with what is best, but with what pleases best. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 359 216. It is our Duty, and ought to be our Care, to ward against that Passion in them, which is more es- pecially our Own Weakness and Affliction: For we are in great measure accountable for them, as well as for our selves. 217. We are in this also true Turners of the World upside down: For Money is first, and Virtue last, and least in our care. 218. It is not How we leave our Children, but What we leave them. 219. To be sure Virtue is but a Supplement, and not a Principal in their Portion and Character : And therefore we see so little Wisdom or Goodness among the Rich, in pro- portion to their Wealth. A COUNTRY LIFE 220. The Country Life is to be pref err'd ; for there we see the Works of God ; but in Cities little else but the Works o£ Men: And the one makes a better Subject for our Con- templation than the other. 221. As Puppets are to Men, and Babies^ to Children, so is Man's Workmanship to God's : We are the Picture, he the Reality, 222. God's Works declare his Power, Wisdom and Good- ness; but Man's Works, for the most part, his Pride, Folly and Excess. The one is for use, the other, chiefly, for Ostentation and Lust. 223. The Country is both the Philosopher's Garden and his Library, in which he Reads and Contemplates the Power, Wisdom and Goodness of God. 224. It is his Food as well as Study ; and gives him Life, as well as Learning, 225. A Sweet and Natural Retreat from Noise and Talk, and allows opportunity for Reflection, and gives the best Subjects for it. 226. In short, 't is an Original, and the Knowledge and Improvement of it, Man's oldest Business and Trade, and the best he can be of. s Dolls. 360 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE ART AND PROJECT 227. Art, is Good, where it is beneficial. Socrates wisely i)Ounded his Knowledge and Instruction by Practice. 228. Have a care therefore of* Projects: And yet despise nothing rashly, or in the Lump. 229. Ingenuity, as well as Religion, sometimes suffers be- tween two Thieves; Pretenders and Despisers. 230. Though injudicious and dishonest Projectors often discredit Art, yet the most useful and extraordinary Inven- tions have not, at first, escap'd the Scorn of Ignorance; as their Authors, rarely, have cracking of their Heads, or breaking their backs. 231. Undertake no Experiment, in Speculation, that ap- pears not true in Art; nor then, at thine own Cost, if costly or hazardous in making. 232. As many Hands make light Work, so several Purses make cheap Experiments. INDUSTRY 233. Industry, is certainly very commendable, and supplies the want of Parts. 234. Patience and Diligence, like Faith, remove Moun- tains. 235. Never give out while there is Hope; but hope not beyond Reason, for that shews more Desire than Judgment. 236. It is a profitable Wisdom to know when we have done enough: Much Time and Pains are spared, in not flattering our selves against Probabilities. TEMPORAL HAPPINESS 237. Do Good with what thou hast, or it will do thee no good. 238^ Seek not to be Rich, but Happy. The one lies in Bags, the other in Content : which Wealth can never give. 239. W-e are apt to call things by wrong Names*. We will have Prosperity to-- be Happiness, and Adversity to be Misery; though that- is^ the School of Wisdom, and often- times the way to Eternal Happiness. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 361 240. If thou wouldest be Happy, bring thy Mind to thy Condition, and have an Indifferency for more than what is sufficient. 241. Have but little to do, and do it thy self: And do to others as thou wouldest have them do to thee: So, thou canst not fail of Temporal Felicity. 242. The generality are the worse for their Plenty: The Voluptuous consumes it, the Miser hides it: 'T is the good Man that uses it, and to good Purposes. But such are hardly found among the Prosperous. 243. Be rather Bountiful, than Expensive. 244. Neither make nor go to Feasts, but let the laborious Poor bless thee at Home in their Solitary Cottages. 245. Never voluntarily want what thou hast in Possession; nor so spend it as to involve thyself in want unavoidable. 246. Be not tempted to presume by Success: For many that have got largely, have lost all, by coveting to get more. 247. To hazard much to get much, has more of Avarice than Wisdom. 248. It is great Prudence both to Bound and Use Pros- perity. 249. Too few know when they have Enough; and fewer know how to employ it. 250. It is equally adviseable not to part lightly with what is hardly gotten, and not to shut up closely what flows in freely. 251. Act not the Shark upon thy Neighbors; nor take Ad- vantage of the Ignorance, Prodigality or Necessity of any one : For that is next door to Fraud, and, at best, makes but an Unblest Gain. 252. It is oftentimes the Judgment of God upon Greedy Rich Men, that he suffers them to push on their Desires of Wealth to the Excess of over-reaching, grinding or op- pression, which poisons all the rest they have gotten: So that it commonly runs away as fast, and by as bad ways as it was heap'd up together. RESPECT 253. Never esteem any Man, or thy self, the more for Money ; nor think the meaner of thy self or another for want 362 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE of it: Verttie being the just Reason of respecting, and the want of it, of slighting any one. 254, A Man like a Watch, is to be valued for his Goings^ 255? He that prefers him upon other accounts, bows to an Idol. 256. Unless Virtue guide us, our Choice must be wrong. 257. An able bad Man, is an ill Instrument, and to be shunned as the Plague. 258. Be not deceived with the first appearances of things, but give thy self Time to be in the right. 259. Show, is not Substance : Realities Govern Wise Men. 260. Have a Care therefore where there is more Sail than Ballast. HAZARD 261. In all Business it is best to put nothing to hazard: But where it is unavoidable, be not rash, hut firm and resign'd. 262. We should not be troubled for what we cannot help : But if it was our Fault, let it be so no more. Amendment is Repentance, if not Reparation. 263. As a Desperate Game needs an able Gamester, so Consideration often would prevent, what the best skill in the World Cannot Recover. 264. Where the Probability of Advantage exceeds not that of Loss, Wisdom never Adventures. 265. To Shoot well Flying is well; but to Chose it, has more of Vanity than Judgment. 266. To be Dextrous in Danger is a Virtue; but to Court Danger to show it, is Weakness. DETRACTION 267. Have a care of that base Evil Detraction. It is the Fruit of Envy, as that is of Pride; the immediate Offspring of the Devil: Who, of an Angel, a Lucifer, a Son of the Morning, made himself a Serpent, a Devil, a Beelzebub, and all that is obnoxious to the Eternal Goodness. 268. Vertue is not secure against Envy. Men will Lessen what they won't Imitate. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 363 269. Dislike what deserves it, but never Hate : For that is of the Nature of Malice; which is almost ever to Persona, not Things, and is one of the blad^est Qualities Sin begets in the Soul. MODERATION 270. It were an happy Day if Men could bound and qualifie their Resentments with Charity to the Offender: For then our Anger would be without Sin, and better convict and edifie the Guilty; which alone can make it lawful. 271. Not to be provok'd is best: But if mov'd, never cor- rect till the Fume is spent; For every Stroke our Fury strikes, is sure to hit our selves at last. 272. If we did but observe the Allowances our Reason makes upon Reflection, when our Passion is over, we could not want a Rule how to behave our selves again in the like Occasions. 273. We are more prone to Complain than Redress, and to Censure than Excuse. 274. It is next to unpardonable, that we can so often Blame what we will not once mend. It shews, we know, but will not do our Master's Will. 275. They that censure, should Practice: Or else let them have the first stone, and the last too. TRICK 276. Nothing needs a Trick but a Trick ; Sincerity loathes Dne. 277. We must take care to do Right Things Rightly : For a just Sentence may be unjustly executed 278. Circumstances give great Light to true judgment, if well weigh'd. PASSION 279. Passion is a sort of Fever m the Mind, which ever leaves us weaker than it found us. 280. But being, intermitting to be sure, 't is curable with care. 364 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 281. It more than any thing deprives us of the use of our Judgment ; for it raises a Dust very hard to see through. 282. Like Wine, whose Lee^ fly by being jogg'd, it is too muddy to Drinks 283. It may not unfitly be termed, the Mob of the Man, that com^mits a Riot upon his Reason. 284. I have sometirnes thought, that a Passionate Man is like a w^ak Spring that cannot stand long lock'd. 285. And as true, that those things are unfit for use, that can't bear small Knocks, without breaking. 286. He that won't hear can't Judge, and he that can't bear Contradiction, may, with all his Wit, miss the Mark. 2^y, Objection and Debate Sift out Truth, which needs Temper as well as Judgment. 288. But above all, observe it in Resentments, for their Passion is most Extravagant. 289. Never chide for Anger, but Instruction. 290. He that corrects out of Passion, raises Revenge sooner than Repentance. 291. It has more of Wantonness than Wisdom, and re- sembles those that Eat to please their Pallate, rather than their Appetite. 292. It is the difference between a Wise and a Weak Man; This Judges by the Lump, that by Parts and their Connection. 293. The Greeks use to say, all Cases are governed by their Circumstances. The same thing may be well and ill as they change or vary the Matter. 294. A Man's Strength is shewn by his Bearing. Bonum Agere, & Male Pati, Regis est^ PERSONAL CAUTIONS 295, Reflect without Malice but never widiowt Need. 296. Despise no Body, nor no Condition; lest it come to be thine own. 29^. Never Rail nor Taunt. The one is Rude, the other Scornful, and both Evil, 2i^. Be not provoked by Injuries, to commit them. ^ To do good and ill to endure is the part of a king. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 365 299. Upbraid only Ingratitude. 300. Haste makes Work which Catition prevents. 301. Tempt no Man; lest thou fall for it. 302. Have a care of presuming upon After-Games :"* For if that miss, all is gone. 303. Opportunities should never be lost, because they can hardly be regained. 304. It is well to cure, but better to prevent a Distemper. iThe first shows more Skill, but the last more Wisdom. 305. Never make a Tryal of Skill in difficult or hazardous Cases. 306. Refuse not to be informed: For that shews Pride or ^Stupidity. 307. Humility and Knowledge in poor Cloaths, excel Pride and Ignorance in costly attire. 308. Neither despise, nor oppose, what thou dost not understand. BALLANCE 309. We must not be concern'd above the Value of the thing that engages us; nor raised above Reason, in main- taining what we think reasonable. 310. It is too common an Error, to invert the Order of Things; by making an End of that which is a Means, and a Means of that which is an End. 311. Religion and Government escape not this Mischief: The first is too often made a Means instead of an End; the other an End instead of a Means. 312. Thus Men seek Wealth rather than Subsistence; and the End of Cloaths is the least Reason of their Use. Nor is the satisfying of our Appetite our End in Eating, so much as the pleasing of our Pailate. The like may also be said of Building, Fin-niture, &c. where the Man rules not the Beast, and Appetite submits not to Reason. 313. It is great Wisdom to proportion our Esteem to the Nature of the Thing: For as that way things will not be undervalued, so neither will they engage as above their intrinsick worth. 314. If we suffer little Things to have great hold upon us, ^'A second game played to reverse the issue of the first 366 SOMK FRUITS OF SOLITUDB we shall be as much transported for them, as if the}^ deserv'd it. 315. It is an old Proverb, Maxima hella ex levissimis causis: The greatest Feuds have had the smallest Beginnings. 316. No matter what the Subject of the Dispute be, but what place we give it in our Minds: For that governs our Concern and Resentment. 317. It is one of the fatalest Errors of our Lives, when we spoil a good Cause by an ill Management : And it is not im- possible but we may mean well in an ill Business; but that will not defend it. 318. If we are but sure the End is Right, w^e are too apt to gallop over all Bounds to compass it; not considering that lawful Ends may be very unlawfully attained. 319. Let us be careful to take just ways to compass just Things; that they may last in their Benefits to us. 320. There is a troublesome Humor some Men have, that if they may not lead, they will not follow; but had rather a thing were never done, than not done their own way, tho' other ways very desirable. 321. This comes of an over- fulness of our selves; and shows we are more concern'd for Praise, than the Success of what we think a good Thing. POPULARITY 322. Affect not to be seen, and Men will less see thy Weakness. 323. They that shew more than they are, raise an Ex- pectation they cannot answer; and so lose their Credit, as soon as they are found out. 324. Avoid Popularity. It has many Snares, and no real Benefit to thy self; and Uncertainty to others. PRIVACY 325. Remember the Proverb, Bene qui latuiij bene vixii. They are happy that live Retiredly. 326. If this be true. Princes and their Grandees, of all Men, are the unhappiest: For they live least alone: And SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDB 367 they that must be enjoyed by every Body, can never enjoy themselves as they should. 327. It is the Advantage little Men have upon them; they can be Private, and have leisure for Family Comforts, which are the greatest worldly Contents Men can enjoy. 328. But they that place Pleasure in Greediness, seek it there: And we see Rule is as much the Ambition of some Natures, as Privacy is the Choice of others. GOVER^TMENT 329. Government has many Shapes : But 't is Sovereignty, tho' not Freedom, in all of them. 330. Rex & Tyrannus are very different Characters: One Rules his People by Laws, to which they consent; the other by his absolute Will and Power. That is call'd Freedom, This Tyranny. 331. The first is endangered by the Ambition of the Popu- lar, which shakes the Constitution: The other by an ill Administration, which hazards the Tyrant and his Family, 332. It is great Wisdom in Princes of both sorts, not to strain Points too high with their People: For whether the People have a Right to oppose them or not, they are ever sure to attempt it, when things are carried too far; though the Remedy oftentimes proves worse than the Disease. 333. Happy that King who is great by Justice, and that People who are free by Obedience. 334. Where the Ruler is Just, he may be strict; else it is two to one it turns upon him: And tho' he should prevail, he can be no Gainer, where his People are the Losers. 335. Princes must not have Passions in Government, nor Resent beyond Interest and Religion. 336. Where Examxple keeps pace with Authority, Power hardly fails to be obey'd, and Magistrates to be honor'd. 337. Let the People thinlc they Govern and they wiU be Govern'd. 338. This cannot fail, if Those they Trust, are Trusted. 339. That Prince that is Just to them in great things, and Humors them sometimes in small ones, is sare to ha\^ and keep them imm aU the World. 368 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 340. For the People is the Politick Wife of the Prince, that may be better managed by Wisdom, than ruled by Force. 341. But where the Magistrate is partial and serves ill turns, he loses his Authority with the People; and gives the Populace opportunity to gratifie their Ambition: And to lay a Stumbling-block for his People to fall. 342. It is true, that where a Subject is more Popular than the Prince, the Prince is in Danger: But it is as true, that it is his own Fault : For no Body has the like Means, Interest or Reason, to be popular as He. 343. It is an unaccountable thing, that some Princes in- cline rather to be fear'd than lov'd; when they see, that Fear does not oftener secure a Prince against the Dissatis- faction of his People, than Love makes a Subject too many for such a Prince. 344. Certainly Service upon Inclination is like to go farther than Obedience upon Compulsion. 345. The Romans had a just Sense of this, when they plac'd Optimus befo*^ Maximus, to their most Illustrious Captains and Cesars. 346. Besides, Experience tells us. That Goodness raises a nobler Passion in the Soul, and gives a better Sense of Duty than Severity. 347. What did Pharaoh get by increasing the Israelites Task? Ruine to himself in the End. 348. Kings, chiefly in this, should imitate God: Their Mercy should be above all their Works. 349. The Difference between the Prince and the Peasant, is in this World : But a Temper ought to be observ'd by him that has the Advantage here, because of the Judgment in the next. 350. The End of every thing should direct the Means: Now that of ^ Government being the Good of the whole, nothing less should be the Aim of the Prince. 351. As often as Rulers endeavor to attain just Ends by just Mediums, they are sure of a quiet and easy Government ; and as sure of Convulsions, where the Nature of things are violated, and their Order overrul'd. 352. It is certain, Princes ought to have great Allowances made them for Faults in Government ; since they see by other SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 369 People's Eyes, and hear by their Ears. But Ministers of State, their immediate Confidents and Instruments, have much to answer for, if to gratifie private Passions, they mis- guide the Prince to do publick Injury. 353. Ministers of State should undertake their Posts at their Peril. If Princes overrule them, let them shew the Law, and humbly resign: If Fear, Gain or Flattery prevail, let them answer it to the Law. 354. The Prince cannot be preserved, but where the Min- ister is punishable: For People, as well as Princes, will not endure Imperium in Imperio^ 355. If Ministers are weak or ill Men, and so spoil their Places, it is the Prince's Fault that chose them : But if their Places spoil them, it is their own Fault to be made worse by them. 356. It is but just that those that reign by their Princes, should suffer for their Princes : For it is a safe and neces- sary Maxim, not to shift Heads in Government, while the Hands are in being that should answer for them. 357. And yet it were intolerable to be a Minister of State, if every Body may be Accuser and Judge. 358. Let therefore the false Accuser no more escape an exemplary Punishment, than the Guilty Minister. 359. For it profanes Government to have the Credit of the leading Men in it, subject to vulgar Censure; which is often ill grounded. 360. The Safety of a Prince, therefore consists in a well- chosen Council: And that only can be said to be so, where the Persons that compose it are qualified for the Business that comes before them. 361. Who would send to a Taylor to make a Lock, or to a Smith to make a Suit of Cloaths ? 362. Let there be Merchants for Trade, Seamen for the Admiralty, Travellers for Foreign Affairs, some of the Lead- ing Men of the Country for Home-Business, and Common and Civil Lawyers to advise of Legality and Right: Who should always keep to the strict Rules of Law. 363. Three Things contribute much to ruin Governments; Looseness, Oppression and Envy. i^An empire within an empire. 370 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 364. Where the Reins of Government are too slack, there the Manners of the People are corrupted : And that destroys Industry, begets Effeminacy, and provokes Heaven against it. 365. Oppression makes a Poor Country, and a Desperate People, who always wait an Opportunity to change. 366. He that ruleth over Men, must be just, ruling in the Fear of God, said an old and a wise King. 367. Envy disturbs and distracts Government, clogs the Wheels, and perplexes the Administration: And nothing contributes more to the Disorder, than a partial distribution of Rewards, and Punishments in the Sovereign. 368. As it is not reasonable that Men should be compell'd to serve; so those that have Employments should not be endured to leave them humorously. 369. V\^here the State intends a Man no Affront, he should not Affront the State. A PRIVATE LIFE 370. Private Life is to be preferred; the Honor and Gain of publick Posts, bearing no proportion with the Comfort of it The one is free and quiet, the other servile and noisy. 371. It was a great Answer of the Shunamite Woman, I dwell among my own People. 372. They that live of their own, neither need, nor often list to wear the Livery of the Publick. ^y-^' Their Subsistance is not during Pleasure; nor have they patrons to please or present. 374. If they are not advanced, neither can they be dis- graced. And as they know not the Smiles of Majesty, so tliey feel not the Frowns of Greatness; or the Effects of Envy. 375. If they want the Pleasures of a Court, they also escape the Temptations of it. 376. Private Men, in fine, are so much their own, that paying common DueSj they are Sovereigns of all the rest A PUBLICK LIFE 377. Yet the Publick must and will be served; and they that do it well, deserve publick Marks of Honor and Profit SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 371 1 378. To do so, Men must have publick Minds, as well I as Salaries ; or they will serve private Ends at the Publick ' Cost. 379. Governments can never be well administered, but where those entrusted make Conscience of well discharging their Place. QUALIFICATIONS 380. Five Things are requisite to a good Officer; Ability, Clean Hands, Dispatch, Patience and Impartiality. CAPACITY 381. He that understands not his Employment, whatever else he knows, must be unfit for it, and the Publick suffers by his Inexpertness. 382. They that are able, should be just too; or the Gov- ernment may be the worse for their Capacity. CLEAN HANDS 383. Covetousness in such Men prompts them to prosti- tute the Publick for Gain. 384. The taking of a Bribe or Gratuity, should be pun- ished with as severe Penalties, as the defrauding of the State. 385. Let Men have sufficient Salaries, and exceed them at their Peril. 386. It is a Dishonor to Government, that its Officers should live of Benevolence; as it ought to be Infamous for Officers to dishonor the Publick, by being tv/ice paid for the same Business. 387. But to be paid, and not to do Business, is rank Oppression. DISPATCH 388. Dispatch is a great and good Qttality in an Officer; v/here Duty, not Gain, excites it. But of this, too many make their private Market and Over-plus to their Wages. Thus the Salary is for doing, and the Bribe, for dispatching 372 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE the Business : As if Business could be done before it were dispatched: Or what ought to be done, ought not to be dis- patch'd: Or they were to be paid apart, one by the Gov- ernment, t'other by the Party. 389. Dispatch is as much the Duty of an Officer, as doing; and very muth the Honor of the Government he serves. 390. Delays have been more injurious than direct Injustice. 391. They too often starve those they dare not deny. 392. The very Winner is made a Loser, because he pays twice for his own; like those that purchase Estates Mort- gaged before to the full Value. 393. Our Law says well, to delay Justice is Injustice. 394. Not to have a Right, and not to come at it, differs Ijttle. 395. Refuse or Dispatch is the Duty and Wisdom of a good Officer. PATIENCE 396. Patience is a Virtue every where; but it shines with great Lustre in the Men of Government. 397. Some are so Proud or Testy, they won't hear what they should redress. 398. Others so weak, they sink or burst under the weight of their Office, though they can lightly run away with the Salary of it. 399. Business can never be well done, that is not well understood: Which cannot be without Patience. 400. It is Cruelty indeed not to give the Unhappy an Hearing, whom we ought to help: But it is the top of Oppression to Browbeat the humble and modest Miserable, when they seek Relief. 401. Some, it is true, are unreasonable in their Desires and Hopes: But then we should inform, not rail at and reject them. 402. It is therefore as great an Instance of Wisdom as a Man in Business can give, to be Patient under the Imperti- nencies and Contradictions that attend it. 403. Method goes far to prevent Trouble in Business: For SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 373 it makes the Task easy, hinders Confusion, saves abundance of Time, and instructs those that have Business depending, both what to do and what to hope. IMPARTIALITY 404. Impartiality, though it be the- last, is not the least Part of the Character of a good Magistrate. 405. It is noted as a Fault, in Holy Writ, even to regard the Poor : How much more the Rich in Judgment ? 406. If our Compassions miust not sway us; less should our Fears, Profits or Prejudices. 407. Justice is justly represented Blind, because she sees no Difference in the Parties concerned. 40^. She has but one Scale and Weight, for Rich and Poor, Great and Small. 409. Her Sentence is not guided by the Person, but the Cause. 410. The Impartial Judge in Judgment, knows nothing but the Law: The Prince no more than the Peasant, his Kindred than a Stranger. Nay, his Enemy is sure to be upon equal Terms with his Friend, when he is upon the Bench. 411. Impartiality is the Life of Justice, as that is of Government. 412. Nor is it only a Benefit to the State, for private Families cannot subsist comfortably without it. 413. Parents that are partial, are ill obeyed by their Children; and partial Masters not better served by their Servants. 414. Partiality is always Indirect, if not Dishonest : For it shews a Byass where Reason would have none; if not an Injury, which Justice every where forbids. 415. As it makes Favorites witliout Reason, so it uses no Reason m judging of Actions : Confirming the Proverb, The Crow thitiks her own Bird the fairest. 416. What some se« to be no Fault in one, they will have Criminal in another. 417. Nay, ho\y ugly do our own Failings look to us in the Persons of others, which yet we see not m our selves. 374 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 418. And but too common it is for some People, not te know their own Maxims and Principles in the Mouths of other Men, when they give occasion to use them. 419. Partiality corrupts our Judgment of Persons and Things, of our selves and others. 420. It contributes more than any thing to Factions in Government, and Fewds in Families. 421. It is prodigal Passion, that seldom returns 'till it is Hunger-bit, and Disappointments bring it within bounds. 422. And yet we may be indifferent, to a Fault. INDIFFERENCY 423. Indifference is good in Judgment, but bad in Relation, and stark nought in Religion. 424. And even in Judgment, our Indifferency must be to the Persons, not Causes : For one, to be sure, is right. NEUTRALITY 425. Neutrality is something else than Indifferency; and yet of kin to it too. 426. A Judge ought to be Indifferent, and yet he cannot be said to be Neutral. 427. The one being to be Even in Judgment, and the other not to meddle at all. 428. And where it is Lawful, to be sure, it is best to be Neutral. 429. He that espouses Parties, can hardly divorce himself from their Fate; and more fall with their Party than rise with it. 430. A wise Neuter joins with neither; but uses both, as his honest Interest leads him. 431. A Neuter only has room to be a Peace-maker: For being of neither side, he has the Means of mediating a Reconciliation of both. A PARTY 432. And yet, where Right or Religion gives a Call, a Neuter must be a Coward or an Hypocrite. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 375 433. In such Cases we should never be backward : nor yet mistaken. 434. When our Right or ReHgion is in question, then is the fittest time to assert it. 435. Nor must we always be Neutral where our Neigh- bors are concerned : For tho' Medling is a Fault, Helping is a Duty. 436. We have a Call to do good, as often as we have the Power and Occasion. 437. If Heathens could say. We are not born for our selves ; surely Christians should practise it. 438. They are taught so by his Example, as well as Doctrine, from whom th^y have borrowed their Name. OSTENTATION, 439. Do what good thou canst unknown ; and be not vain of what ought rather to be felt, than seen. 440. The Humble, in the Parable of the Day of Judg- ment, forgot their good Works; Lord, when did we do so and so? 441. He that does Good, for Good's sake, seeks neither Praise nor Reward; tho' sure of both at last. COMPLEAT VIRTUE 442. Content not thy self that thou art Virtuous in the general : For one Link being wanting, the Chain is defective. 443. Perhaps thou art rather Innocent than Virtuous, and owest more to thy Constitution, than thy Religion. 444. Innocent, is not to be Guilty : But Virtuous is to over- come our evil Inclinations. 445. If thou hast not conquered thy self in that which is thy own particular Weakness, thou hast no Title to Virtue, tho* thou art free of other Men's. 446. For a Covetous Man to inveigh against Prodigality, an Atheist against Idolatry, a Tyrant against Rebellion, or a Lyer against Forgery, and a Drunkard against Intemper- ance, is for the Pot to call the Kettle black. 447. vSuch Reproof would have but little Success; because It would carry but Httle Authority with it. 376 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 448. If thou wouldest conquer thy Weakness, thou must never gratify it. 449. No Man is compelled to Evil ; his Consent only makes it his. 450. 'T is no Sin to be tempted, but to be overcome. 451. What Man in his right Mind, would conspire his own hurt? Men are beside themselves, when they transgress their Convictions. 452. If thou would'st not Sin, don't Desire; and if thou would'st not Lust, don't Embrace the Temptation: No, not look at it, nor think of it. 453. Thou would'st take much Pains to save thy Body: Take some, prithee, to save thy Soul. RELIGION 454. Religion is the Fear of God, and its Demonstration on good Works ; and Faith is the Root of both : For without Faith we cannot please God, nor can we fear what we do not believe. 455. The Devils also believe and know abundance : But in this is the Difference, their Faith works not by Love, nor their Knowledge by Obedience ; and therefore they are never the better for them. And if ours be such, we shall be of their Church, not of Christ's: For as the Head is, so must the Body be. 456. He was Holy, Humble, Harmless, Meek, Merciful, &c. when among us ; to teach us what we should be, when he was gone. And yet he is among us still, and in us too, a living and perpetual Preacher of the same Grace, by his Spirit in our Consciences. 457. A Minister of the Gospel ought to be one of Christ's making, if he would pass for one of Christ's Ministers. 458. And if he be one of his making, he Knows and Does as well as Believes. 459. That Minister whose Life is not the Model of his Doctrine, is a Babkr rather than a Preacher ; a Qiiack rather than a Phy^cian of Value. 460. Of old Time they were made Mrnkters by the Holy Gho-st: And the more that is an ii^alient uow, thee fitter they are for that Work. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 377 461. Running Streams are not so apt to corrupt; nor Itinerant, as settled Preachers: But they are not to run be- fore they are sent. 462. As they freely receive from Christ, so they give. 463. They will not make that a Trade, which they know ought not, in Conscience, to be one. 464. Yet there is no fear of their Living that design not to live by it. 465. The humble and true Teacher meets with more than he expects. 466. He accounts Content with Godliness great Gain, and therefore seeks not to make a Gain of Godliness. 467. As the Ministers of Christ are made by him, and are like him, so they beget People into the same Likeness. 468. To be like Christ then, is to be a Christian. And Regeneration is the only way to the Kingdom of God, which we pray for. 469. Let us to Day, therefore, hear his Voice, and not harden our Hearts; who speaks to us many ways. In the Scriptures, in our Hearts, by his Servants and his Provi- dences : And the Sum of all is Holiness and Charity. 470. St. James gives a short Draught of this Matter, but very full and reaching. Pure Religion and undefiled before God the Father, is this, to visit the Fatherless and the Widows in their Affliction, and to keep our selves unspotted from the World. Which is compriz'd in these Two Words, Charity and Piety. 471. They that truly make these their Aim, will find them their Attainment; and with them, the Peace that follows so excellent a Condition. 472. Amuse not thy self therefore with the numerous Opinions of the World, nor value thy self upon verbal Orthodoxy, Philosophy, or thy Skill in Tongues, or Knowl- edge of the Fathers : (too much the Business and Vanity of the World). But in this rejoyce. That thou knowest God, that is the Lord, who exerciseth loving Kindness, and Judg- ment, and Righteousness in the Earth. 473. Publick Worship is very commendable, if well per- formed. We owe it to God and good Example. But we must know, that God is not tyed to Time or Place, who is 378 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE every where at the same Time: And this we shall know, as far as we are capable, if where ever we are, our Desires are to be with him. 474. Serving God, People generally confine to the Acts of Pubiick and Private Wofship: And those, the more zealous do oftener repeat, in hopes of Acceptance. 475. But if we consider that God is an Infinite Spirit, and, as such, every where; and that our Saviour has taught us, That he will be worshipped in Spirit and in Truth ; we shall see the shortness of such a Notion. 476. For serving God concerns the Frame of our Spirits, in the whole Course of our Lives; in every Occasion we ihave, in which we may shew our Love to his Law. 477. For as Men in Battle are continually in the way of shot, so we, in this World, are ever within the Reach of Temptation. And herein do we serve God, if we avoid what we are forbid, as well as do what he commands. 478. God is better served in resisting a Temptation to Evil, than in many formal Prayers. 479. This is but Twice or Thrice a Day; but That every Hour and Moment of the Day. So much more is our continual Watch, than our Evening and Morning Devotion. 480. Wouldst thou then serve God? Do not that alone, which thou wouldest not that another should see thee do. 481. Don't take God's Name in vain, or disobey thy Par- ents, or wrong thy Neighbor, or commit Adultery even in thine Heart. 482. Neither be vain. Lascivious, Proud, Drunken, Re- vengeful or Angry: Nor Lye, Detract, Backbite, Overreach, Oppress, Deceive or Betray: But watch vigorously against all Temptations to these Things; as knowing that God is present, the Overseer of all thy Ways and most inward Thoughts, and the Avenger of his own Law upon the Dis- obedient, and thou wilt acceptably serve God. 483. is it not reason, if we expect the Acknowledgments of those to whom we are bountiful, that we should rever- ently pay ours to God, our most magnificent and constant Benefactor ? 484. The World represents a Rare and Sumptuous Palac% SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 379 Mankind the great Family in it, and God the mighty Lord and Master of it. 485. We are all sensible what a stately Seat it is: The Heavens adorned with so many glorious Luminaries; and the Earth with Groves, Plains, Valleys, Hills, Fountains, Ponds, Lakes and Rivers; and Variety of Fruits, and Crea- tures for Food, Pleasure and Profit. In short, how Noble an House he keeps, and the Plenty and Variety and Ex- cellency of his Table; his Orders, Seasons and Suitableness of every Time and Thing. But we must be as sensible, or at least ought to be, what Careless and Idle Servants we are, and how short and disproportionable our Behavior is to his Bounty and Goodness : How long he bears, and often he reprieves and forgives us : Who, notwithstanding our Breach of Promises, and repeated Neglects, has not yet been pro- vok'd to break up House, and send us to shift for our selves. Should not this great Goodness raise a due Sense in us of our Undutifulness, and a Resolution to alter our Course and mend our Manners; that we may be for the future more worthy Communicants at our Master's good and great Table? Especially since it is not more certain that we de- serve his Displeasure than that we should feel it, if we continue to be unprofitable Servants. 486. But tho' God has replenisht this World with abund- ance of good Things for Man's Life and Comfort, yet they are all but Imperfect Goods. He only is the Perfect Good to whom they point. But alas! Men cannot see him for them; tho' they should always see him In them. 487. I have often wondered at the unaccountableness of Man in this, among other things ; that tho' he loves Changes so well, he should care so little to hear or think of his last, great, and best Change too, if he pleases. 488. Being, as to our Bodies, composed of changeable Ele- ments, we with the World, are made up of, and subsist hy Revolution : But our Souls being of another and nobler Na- ture, we should seek our Rest in a more induring Habitation. 489. The truest end of Life, is, to know the Life that never ends. 490. He that makes this his Care, will find it his Crowa at last 380 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 491. Life else, were a Misery rather than a Pleasure, a Judgment, not a Blessing. 492. For to Know, Regret and Resent; to Desire, Hope and Fear, more than a Beast, and not live beyond him, is to make a Man less than a Beast. 493. It is the Amends of a short and troublesome Life, that Doing well, and Suffering ill. Entitles Man to One Longer and Better. 494. This ever raises the Good Man's Hope, and gives him Tastes beyond the other World. 495. As 't is his Aim, so none else can hit the Mark. 496. Many make it their Speculation, but 't is the Good Man's Practice. 497. His Work keeps Pace with his Life, and so leaves nothing to be done when he Dies. 498. And he that lives to live ever, never fears dying. 499. Nor can the Means be terrible to him that heartily believes the End. 500. For tho' Death be a Dark Passage, it leads to Im- mortality, and that 's Recompence enough for Suffering of it. 501. And yet Faith Lights us, even through the Grave, being the Evidence of Things not seen. 502. And this is the Comfort of the Good, that the Grave cannot hold them, and that they live as soon as they die. 503. For Death is no more than a Turning of us over from Time to Eternity. 504. Nor can there be a Revolution without it; for it supposes the Dissolution of one form, in order to the Suc- cession of another, 505. Death then, being the Way and Condition of Life, we cannot love to live, if we cannot bear to die. 506. Let us then not cozen our selves with the Shells and Husks of things; nor prefer Form to Power, nor Shadows to Substance : Pictures of Bread will not satisfie Hunger, nor those of Devotion please God. 507. This World is a Form; our Bodies are Forms; and no visible Acts of Devotion can be without Fornis. But yet the less Forjn in Religion the better, since God is a Spirit: (For the more mental our Worship, the more adequate to the SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 381 Natts^e of God; the more silent, the more suitable to the Language of a Spirit. 508- Words are for others, not for our selves: Nor for God, who hears not as Bodies do; but as Spirits should. 509. If we would know this Dialect; we must learn of the Divine Principle in us. As we hear the Dictates of that, so God hears us. 510. There we may see him too in all his Attributes ; Tho' but in little, yet as much as we can apprehend or bear: for as he is in himself, he is incomprehensible, and dwelleth in that Light which no Eye can approach. But in his Image we may behold his Glory; enough to exalt our Apprehen- sions of God, and to instruct us in that Worship which pleaseth him. 511. Men may Tire themselves in a Labyrinth of Search, and talk of God: But if we would know him indeed, it must be from the Impressions we jreceive of him ; and the softer our Hearts are, the deeper and livelier those will be upon us. 512. If he has made us sensible of his Justice, by his Re- proof ; of his Patience, by his Forbearance ; of his Mercy, by his Forgiveness ; of his Holiness, by the Sanctification of our Hearts through his Spirit; we have a grounded Knowledge of God. This is Experience, that Speculation; This En- joyment, that Report. In short, this is undeniable Evidence, with the realities of Religion, and will stand all Winds and Weathers. 513. As our Faith, so our Devotion should be lively. Cold Meat won't serve at those Repasts. 514. It 's a Coal from God's Altar must kindle our Fire: And without Fire, true Fire, no acceptable Sacrifice. 515. Open thou my Lips, and then, said the Royal Prophet, My Mouth shall praise God. But not 'till then. 516. The Preparation of the Heart, as well as Answer of the Tongue, is of the Lord: And to have it, our Prayers must be powerful, and our Worship grateful. 517. Let us chuse, therefore, to commune where there is the warmest Sense of Religion; where Devotion exceeds Formality, and Practice most corresponds with Profession; 382 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE and where there is at least as much Charity as Zeal: For where this Society is to be found, there shall we find the Church of God. 518. As Good, so 111 Men are all of a Church; and every Body knows who must be Head of it. 519. The Humble, Meek, Merciful, Just, Pious and Devout Souls, are everywhere of one Religion; and when Death has taken off the Mask, they will know one another, tho' the divers Liveries they wear here make them Strangers. 520. Great Allowances are to be made of Education, and personal Weaknesses : But 't is a Rule with me, that Man is truly Religious, that loves the Persuasion he is of, for the Piety rather than Ceremony of it. 521. They that have one End, can hardly disagree when they meet. At least their concern is in the Greater, mod- erates the value and difference about the lesser things. 522. It is a sad Reflection, that many Men hardly have any Religion at all ; and most Men have none of their own : For that which is the Religion of their Education, and not of their Judgment, is the ReHgion of Another, and not Theirs. 523. To have Religion upon Authority, and not upon Con- viction, is like a Finger Watch, to be set forwards or back- wards, as he pleases that has it in keeping. 524. It is a Preposterous thing, that Men can venture their Souls where they will not venture their Money: For they will take their Religion upon trust, but not trust a Synod about the Goodness of Half a Crown, 525. They will follow their own Judgment when their Money is concerned, whatever they do for their Souls. 526. But to be sure, that Religion cannot be right, that a Man is the worse for having. 527. No Religion is better than an Unnatural One. 528. Grace perfects, but never sours or spoils Nature. 529. To be Unnatural in Defence of Grace, is a Contra- diction. 530. Hardly any thing looks worse, than to defend Re- ligion by ways that shew it has no Credit with us. 531. A Devout Man is one thing, a Stickler is quite another. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 383 532. "When our Minds exceed their just Bounds, we must needs discredit what we would recommend. 533. To be Furious in Religion, is to be Irreligiously Religious. 534. If he that is without Bowels, is not a Man; How then can he be a Christian ? 535. It were better to be of no Church, than to be bitter for any. 536. Bitterness comes very near to Enmity, and that is Beelzebub ; because the Perfection of Wickedness. 537. A good End cannot sanctifie evil Means; nor must we ever do Evil, that Good may come of it. 538. Some Folks think they may Scold, Rail, Hate, Rob and Kill too ; so it be but for God's sake. 539. But nothing in us unlike him, can please him. 540. It is as great Presumption to send our Passions upon God's Errands, as it is to palliate them with God's Name. 541. Zeal dropped in Charity, is good, without it good for •nothing: For it devours all it comes near. 542. They must first judge themselves, that presume to censure others: And such will not be apt to overshoot the Mark. 543. We are too ready to retaliate, rather than forgive, or gain by Love and Information. 544. And yet we could hurt no Man that we believe loves us. 545. Let us then try what Love will do: For if Men did once see we Love them, we should soon find they would not harm us. 546. Force may subdue, but Love gains : And he that for- gives first, wins the Lawrel. 547. If I am even with my Enemy, the Debt is paid; but if I forgive it, I oblige him for ever. 548. Love is the hardest Lesson in Christianity; but, for that reason, it should be most our care to learn it. DifUcilia qucB Pulchra^ 549. It is a severe Rebuke upon us, that God makes us so many Allowances, and we make so few to our Neighbor : As 12 Those things are difficult which are beautiful. 384 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE if Charity had nothing to do with Religion; Or Love with Faith, that ought to work by it. 550. I find all sorts of People agree, whatsoever were their Animosities, when humbled by the Approaches of Death: Then they forgive, then they pray for, and love one another : Which shews us, that it is not our Reason, but our Passion, that makes and holds up the Feuds that reign among men in their Health and Fulness. They, therefore, that live near- est to that which they should die, must certainly live best. 551. Did we believe a final Reckoning and Judgment; or (did we think enough of what we do believe, we would allow more Love iti Religion than we do; since Religion it self is nothing else but Love to God and Man. 552. He that lives in Love lives in God, says the Beloved Disciple : And to be sure a Man can live no where better. 553. It is most reasonable Men should value that Benefit, which is most durable. Now Tongues shall cease, and Prophecy fail, and Faith shall be consummated in Sight, and Hope in Enjoyment; but Love remains. 554. Love is indeed Heaven upon Earth; since Heaven above would not be Heaven without it: For where there is not Love; there is Fear: But perfect Love casts out Fear. And yet we naturally fear most to offend what we most Love. 555. What we Love, we '11 Hear; what we Love, we '11 Trust; and what we Love, we '11 serve, ay, and suffer for too. If you love me (says our Blessed Redeemer) keep my Commandments. Why? Why then he '11 Love us; then we shall be his Friends; then he '11 send us the Comforter; then whatsoever we ask, we shall receive; and then where he is we shall be also, and that for ever. Behold the Fruits of Love ; the Power, Vertue, Benefit and Beauty of Love ! 556. Love is above all; and when it prevails in us all, we shall all be Lovely, and in Love with God and one with another, AmeUc END OF PART I MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE BEING THE SECOND PART OF REFLECTIONS AND MAXIMS, RELATING TO THE CONDUCT OF HUMAN LIFE 13 HC— Vol. t PART II The Right Moralist . . , ^ « The World's Able Man . . . »; » The Wise Man «: Of the Government of Thoughts . Of Envy Of Man's Life Of Ambition Of Praise or Applause Of Conduct in Speech Union of Friends . . Of Being Easy in Living . . . . , Of Man's Inconsiderateness and Partiality . Of the Rule of Judging ..... Of Formality Of the Mean Notion we Have of God Of the Benefit of Justice . . « o Of Jealousy ........ Of State Of a Good Servant » » Of an Immediate Pursuit of the World . Of the Interest of the Publick in our Estates „ The Vain Man The Conformist The Obligations of Great Men to Almighty God Of Refining upon Other Men's Actions or Interests Of Charity . . .. ,._ ±. PAGE, . 391 . 392 « 395 . 396 . 398 = 399 . 399 . 400 . 401 . 402 . 402 . 403 • 404 ■- 405 . 40s . 406 . 407 . 407 . 408 . 408 o 409 . 410 . 411 . 412 . 414 . 415 387 THE INTRODUCTION TO THE READER The Title of this Treatise shows, there was a former of the same Nature; and the Author hopes he runs no Hazard in recommending both to his Reader's Perusal. He is well aware of the low Reckoning the Labors of indifferent Authors are under, at a Time when hardly any Thing passes for current, that is not calculated to flatter the Sharpness of contending Parties. He is also sensible, that Books grow a very Drug, where they cannot raise and support their Credit, by their own Use- fulness; and how far this will be able to do it, he knows not; yet he thinks himself tollerably safe in making it publick, in three Respects. First, That the Purchase is small, and the Time but little, that is requisite to read it. Next, Though some Men should not find it relish'd high enough for their finer Wits, or warmer Pallats, it will not per- haps be useless to those of lower Flights, and who are less en- gaged in publick Heats. Lastly, The Author honestly aims at as general a Benefit as the Thing will bear; to Youth especially, whether he hits the Mark or not: And that without the least Ostentation, or any private Regards, Let not Envy misinterpret his Intention, and he will be account- able for all other Faults. Vale. 389 ^E FRUIT I BEING THE SECOND PART OF REFLECTIONS & MAXIMS THE RIGHT MORALIST ARIGHT Moralist, is a Great and Good Man, but for that Reason he is rarely to be found. 2. There are a Sort of People, that are fond of the Character, who, in my Opinion, have but little Title to it. 3. They think it enough, not to defraud a Man of his Pay, or betray his Friend ; but never consider, That the Law for- bids the one at his Peril, and that Virtue is seldom the Reason of the other. 4. But certainly he that Covets, can no more be a Moral Man, than he that Steals; since he does so in his Mind. Nor can he be one that Robs his Neighbor of his Credit, or that craftily undermines him of his Trade or Office. 5. If a Man pays his Taylor, but Debauches his Wife; Is he a current Moralist? 6. But what shall v\^e say of the Man that Rebels against his Father, is an 111 Husband, or an Abusive Neighbor ; one that 's Lavish of his Time, of his Health, and of his Estate, in which his Family is so nearly concerned? Must he go for a Right Moralist, because he pays his Rent well? 7. I would ask some of those Men of Morals, Whether he that Robs God and Himself too, tho' he should not defraud his Neighbor, be the Moral Man ? 8. Do I owe m.y self Nothing? And do I not owe All to God? And if paying what we owe, makes the Moral Man, is it not fit we should begin to render our Dues, where we owe our very Beginning; ay, our All? 9. The Compleat Moralist begins with God; he gives him 391 392 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE ^ his Due, his Heart, his Love, his Service; the Bountiful Giver of his Well-Being, as well as Being. 10. He that lives without a Sense of this Dependency and Obligation, cannot be a Moral Man, because he does not make his Returns of Love and Obedience; as becomes an honest and a sensible Creature: Which very Term Implies he is not his own; and it cannot be very honest to mis- imploy another's Goods. 11. But can there be no Debt, but to a fellow Creature? Or, will our Exactness in paying those Dribling ones, while we neglect our weightier Obligations, Cancel the Bonds we lie under, and render us right and thorough Moralists ? 12. As Judgments are paid before Bonds, and Bonds before Bills or Book-Debts, so the Moralist considers his Obligations according to their several Dignities. In the first Place^ Him to whom he owes himself. Next, himself, in his Health and Livelihood. Lastly, His other Obligations, whether Rational or Pecuniary ; doing to others, to the Extent of his Ability, as he would have them do unto him. 13. In short, The Moral Man is he that Loves God above All, and his Neighbor as himself, which fulfils both Tables at once. THE world's able MAN 14. It is by some thought, the Character of an Able Man, to be Dark and not Understood. But I am sure that is not fair Play. 15. If he be so by Silence, 't is better; but if by Disguises, 't is insincere and hateful. 16. Secrecy is one Thing, false Lights is another. 17. The honest Man, that is rather free, than open, is ever to be preferr'd ; especially when Sense is at Helm. 18. The Glorying of the other Humor is in a Vice : For it is not Humane to be Cold, Dark, and Unconversable. I was a going to say, they are Hke Pick-Pockets in a Crowd, where a Man must ever have his Hand on his Purse; or as Spies in a Garrison, that if not prevented betrays it. 19. They are the Reverse of Human Nature, and yet this is the present World's Wise Man and Politician: Excellent MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 393 Qualities for Lapland, where, they say, Witches, though not many Conjurors, dwell. 20. Like Highway-Men, that rarely Rob without Vizards, or in the same Wigs and Cloaths, but have a Dress for every Enterprize. 21. At best, he may be a Cunning Man, which is a sort of Lurcher in the Politicks. 22. He is never too hard for the Wise Man upon the Square, for ihat is out of his Element, and puts him quite by his Skill. Nor are Wise Men ever catch'd by him, but when they trust him. 23. But as Cold and Close as he seems, he can and will please all, if he gets by it, though it should neither please God nor himself at bottom. 24. He is for every Cause that brings him Gain, but Ira- placable if disappointed of Success. 25. And v/hat he cannot hinder, he will be sure to Spoil, by over-doing it. 26. None so Zealous then as he, for that which he cannot abide. 27. What is it he will not, or cannot do, to hide his true Sentiments. 28. For his Interest, he refuses no Side or Party ; and will take the Wrong by the Hand, v/hen t'other won't do, with as good a Grace as the Right. 29. Nay, he commonly chooses the Worst, because that brings the best Bribe : His Cause being ever Money. 30. He Sails with all Winds, and is never out of his Way, where any Thing is to be had. 31. A Privateer indeed, and everywhere a very Bird of Prey. 32. True to nothing but himself, and false to all Persons and Parties, to serve his own Turn. 33. Talk with him as often as you please, he will never pay you in good Coin ; for 't is either False or Clipt. 34. But to give a False Reason for any Thing, let my Reader never learn of him, no more than to give a Brass Half-Crown for a good one : Not only because it is not true, but because it Deceives the Person to whom it is given; which I take to be an Immoralit^r. 394 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 35. Silence is much more preferable, for it saves the Secret, as well as the Person's Honor. 36. Such as give themselves the Latitude of saying what they do not mean, come to be errant Jockeys at more Things than one ; but in Religion and Politicks, 't is miost pernicious. 37. To hear two Men talk the Reverse of their own Senti- ments, with all the good Breeding and Appearance of Friend- ship imaginable, on purpose to Cozen or Pamp each other, is to a Man of Virtue and Honor, one of the Melancholiest, as well as most Nauseous Thing in the World. 38. But that it should be the Character of an Able Man, is to Disinherit Wisdom, and Paint out our Degeneracy to the Life, by setting up Fraud, an errant Impostor, in her Room. 39. The Tryal of Skill between these two is, who shall believe least of what t'other says ; and he that has the Weak- ness, or good Nature to give out first, (viz. to believe any Thing t'other says) is look'd upon to be Trick'd. 40. I cannot see the Policy, any more than the Necessity, of a Man's Mind always giving the Lye to his Mouth, or his Mouth ever giving the false Alarms of his Mind: For no Man can be long believed, that teaches all Men to distrust him; and since the Ablest have sometimes need of Credit, where lies the Advantage of their Politick Cant or Banter upon Mankind? 41. I remember a Passage of one of Queen Elizabeth's Great Men, as Advice to his Friend; The Advantage, says he, I had upon others at Court, was, that I always spoke as I thought, which being not believed by them, I both pre- serv'd a good Conscience, and suffered no Damage from that Freedom : Which, as it shows the Vice to be Older than our Times, so that Gallant Man's Integrity, to be the best Way of avoiding it. 42. To be sure it is wise as well as Honest, neither to flatter other Men's Sentiments, nor Dissemble and less Contradict our own. 43. To hold ones Tongue, or speak Truth, or talk only ol indifferent Things, is the Fairest Conversation. 44. Women that rarely go Abroad without Vizard-Masks, have none of the best Reputatioii. But when we consider MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 395 what all this Art and Disguise are for, it equally heightens the Wise Man's Wonder and Aversion : Perhaps it is to be- tray a Father, a Brother, a Master, a Friend, a Neighbor, or ones own Party. 45. A fine Conquest ! what Noble Grecians and Romans abhorr'd: As if Government could not subsist without Knavery, and that Knaves were the Usefullest Props to it; tho* the basest, as well as greatest. Perversion of the Ends of it. 46. But that it should become a Maxim, shows but too grossly the Corruption of the Tim-es. 47. I confess I have heard the Stile of a Useful Knave, but ever took it to be a silly or a knavish Saying ; at least an Excuse for Knavery. 48. It is as reasonable to think a Whore makes the best Wife, as a Knave the best Officer. 49. Besides, Employing Knaves, Encourages Knavery in- stead of punishing it; and Alienates the Reward of Virtue. Or, at least, m^ust make the World believe, the Country yields not honest Men enough, able to serve her. 50. Art thou a Magistrate? Prefer such as have clean Characters v/here they live, and of Estates to secure a just Discharge of their Trusts ; that are under no Temptation to strain Points for a Fortune: For somictimes such may be found, sooner than the}^ are Employed. 51. Art thou a Private Man? Contract thy Acquaintance in a narrow Compass, and chuse Those for the Subjects of it, that are Men of Principles ; such as will make full Stops, where Honor will not lead them on; and that had rather bear the disgrace of not being thorow Paced Men, than for- feit their Peace and Reputation by a base CompHance. THE WISE MAN 52. The Wise Man Governs himself by the Reason of his Case, and because v/hat he does is Best: Best, in a Moral and Prudent, not a Sinister Sense. 53. He proposes just Ends, and employs the fairest and probablest Means and Methods to attain them. 54. Though you cannot always penetrate his Design, or 396 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE his Reasons for it, yet you shall ever see his Actions of a Piece, and his Performances like a Workman: They will bear the Touch of Wisdom and Honor, as often as they are tryed. 55. He scorns to serve himself by Indirect Means, or be an Interloper in Government, since just Enterprises never want any Just Ways to succeed them. 56. To do Evil, that Good may come of it, is for Bunglers in Politicks, as well as Morals. 57. Like those Surgeons, that will cut off an Arm they can't cure, to hide their Ignorance and save their Credit. 58. The Wise Man is Cautious, but not cunning; Judicious, but not Crafty; making Virtue the Measure of using his Excellent Understanding in the Conduct of his Life. 59. The Wise Man is equal, ready, but not officious; has in every Thing an Eye to Sure Footing: He offends no Body, nor easily is offended, and always willing to Com- pound for Wrongs, if not forgive them. 60. He is never Captious, nor Critical; hates Banter and Jests: He may be Pleasant, but not Light; he never deals but in Substantial V/are, and leaves the rest for the Toy Pates (or Shops) of the World; which are so far from being his Business, that they are not so much as his Diversion. 61. He is always for some solid Good, Civil or Moral ; as, to make his Country more Virtuous, Preserve her Peace and Liberty, Imploy her Poor, Improve Land, Advance Trade, Suppress Vice, Incourage Industry, and all Mechanick Knowledge; and that they should be the Care of the Gov- ernment, and the Blessing and Praise of the People. 62. To conclude: He is Just, and fears God, hates Covet- ousness, and eschews Evil, and loves his Neighbor as himself. OF THE GOVERNMENT OF THOUGHTS 63. Man being made a Reasonable, and so a Thinking Creature, there is nothing more Worthy of his Being, than the Right Direction and Employment of his Thoughts ; since upon This, depends both his Usefulness to the Publick, and his own present and future Benefit in all Respects. MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 397 64. The Consideration of this, has often obliged me to Lament the Unhappiness of Mankind, that through too great a Mixture and Confusion of Thoughts, have been hardly able to make a Right or Mature Judgment of Things. 65. To this is owing the various Uncertainty and Con- fusion we see in the World, and the Intemperate Zeal that occasions them. 66. To this also is to be attributed the imperfect Knowl- edge we have of Things, and the slow Progress we make in attaining to a Better; like the Children of Israel that were forty Years upon their Journey, from Egypt to Canaan, which might have been performed in Less than One. 6y. In fine, 't is to this that we ought to ascribe, if not all, at least most of the Infelicities we Labor under. 68. Clear therefore thy Head, and Rally and Manage thy Thoughts Rightly, and thou wilt Save Time, and See and Do thy Business Well; for thy Judgment will be Distinct, thy Mind Free, and the Faculties Strong and Regular. 69. Always remember to bound thy Thoughts to the present Occasion. 70. If it be thy Religious Duty, suffer nothing else to Share in them. And if any Civil or Temporal Affair, ob- serve the same Caution, and thou wilt be a whole Man to every Thing, and do twice the Business in the same Time. 71. If any Point over-Labors thy Mind, divert and re- lieve it, by some other Subject, of a more Sensible, or Manual Nature, rather than what may affect the Under- standing; for this were to write one Thing upon another, which blots out our former Impressions, or renders them illegible. 72. They that are least divided in their Care, always give the best Account of their Business. 73. As therefore thou art always to pursue the present Subject, till thou hast master'd it, so if it fall out that thou hast more Affairs than one upon thy Hand, be sure to prefer that which is of most Moment, and will least wait thy Leisure. 74. He that Judges not well of the Importance of his Affairs, though he may be always Busy, he must make but a small Progress. 398. SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE / / 75. But make not more Business necessary than is sp; and rather lessen than augment Work for thy self. y6. Nor yet be over-eager in pursuit of any Thing; for the Mercurial too often happen to leave Judgment behind them, and sometim.es make Work for Repentance. •/y. He that over-runs his Business, leaves it for him that follows more leisurely to take it up ; which has often proved a profitable Harvest to them that never Sow'd. 78. 'T is the Advantage that slower Tempers have upon the Men of lively Parts, that tho' they don't lead, they will Follow well, and Glean Clean. 79. Upon the whole Matter, Employ thy Thoughts as thy Business requires, and let that have a Place according to Merit and Urgency; giving every Thing a Review and due Digestion, and thou wilt prevent many Errors and Vexations, as well as save much Time to thy self in the Course of thy Life. OF ENVY 80. It is the Mark of an ill Nature, to lessen good Actions, and aggravate ill Ones. 81. Some m.en do as much begrutch others a good Name, as they want one themselves; and perhaps that is the Rea- son of it. 82. But certainly they are in the Wrong, that can think they are lessened, because others have their Due. 83. Such People generally have less Merit than Ambition, that Covet the Reward of othfer Men's; and to be sure a very ill Nature, that will rather Rob others of their Due, than allow them their Praise. 84. It is more an Error of our Will, than our Judgment: For we know it to be an Effect of our Passion, not our Reason; and therefore we are the more culpable in our Partial Estimates. 85. It is as Envious as Unjust, to underrate another's Actions where their intrinsick Worth recommends them to disengaged Minds. 86. Nothing shews more the Folly, as well as Fraud of Man, than Clipping of Merit and Reputation. S^. And as some Men think it an Allay to themselves. MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 399 tliat others liave their Right ; so they know no End of Pilfer- ing to raise their own Credit. ^8. This Envy is the Child of Pride and Misgives, rather than Mistakes. 89. It will have Charity, to be Ostentation; Sobriety, Covetousness ; Humility, Craft; Bounty, Popularity: In short, Virtue must be Design, and Religion, only Interest. Nay, the best of Qualities must not pass without a But to allay their Merit and abate their Praise. Basest of Tempers ! and they that have them, the Worst of Men 1 90. But Just and Noble Minds Rejoice in other Men's Success, and help to augment their Praise. 91. And indeed they are not without a Love to Virtue, that take a Satisfaction in seeing her Rewarded, and such deserve to share her Character that do abhor to lessen it. OF man's life 92. Why is Man less durable than the Works of liis Hands, but because This is not the Place of his Rest? 93. And it is a Great and Just Reproach upon him, that he should nx his Mind where he cannot stay himself. 94. Were it not more his Wisdom to be concerned about those Works that will go with him, and erect a Mansion for him where Time has Power neither over him nor it? 95. 'T is a sad Thing for Man so often to miss his Way to his Best, as well as most Lasting Home. OF AMBITION 96. They that soar too high, often fall hard ; which makes a low and level Dwelling preferrable. 97. The tallest Trees are most in the Power of the Winds, and Ambitious Men of the Blasts of Fortune. 98. They are most seen and observed, and most envyed: Least Quiet, but most talk'd of, and not often to their Advantage. 99. Those Buildings had need of a good Foundation, that lie so much exposed to Weather. 100. Good Works are a Rock^ that will support theit 400 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE Credit; but 111 Ones a Sandy Foundation that Yields Calamities. j 1 01. And truly they ought to expect no Pity in their F^ll, that when in Power had no Bowels for the Unhappy. 102. The worst of Distempers; always Craving and Thirsty, Restless and Hated: A perfect Delirium in the Mind: Insufferable in Success, and in Disappointments most Revengeful. OF PRAISE OR APPLAUSE 103. We are too apt to love Praise, but not to Deserve it. 104. But if we would Deserve it, we must love Virtue more than That. 105. As there is no Passion in us sooner moved, or more deceivable, so for that Reason there is none over which we ought to be more Watchful, whether we give or receive it: For if we give it, we must be sure to mean it, and measure it too. 106. If we are Penurious, it shows Emulation; if we ex- ceed. Flattery. 107. Good Measure belongs to Good Actions; more looks Nauseous, as well as Insincere; besides, 't is a Persecuting of the Meritorious, who are out of Countenance to hear, what they deserve. 108. It is much easier for him to merit Applause, than hear of it : And he never doubts himself more, or the Person that gives it, than when he hears so much of it. 109. But to say true, there needs not many Cautions on this Hand, since the World is rarely just enough to the Deserving. no. However, we cannot be too Circumspect how we receive Praise: For if we contemplate our selves in a false Glass, we are sure to be mistaken about our Dues; and because we are too apt to believe what is Pleasing, rather than what is True, we may be too easily swell'd, beyond our just Proportion, by the Windy Compliments of Men. III. Make ever therefore Allowances for what is said on such Occasions, or thou Exposest, as well as Deceivest thy self. MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 401 112. For an Over-value of our selves, gives us but a dangerous Security in many Respects. 113. We expect more than belongs to us; take all that 's given us though never meant us; and fall out v^^ith those that are not as full of us as v^e are of our selves. 114. In short, 't is a Passion that abuses our Judgment, and makes us both Unsafe and Ridiculous. 115. Be not fond therefore of Praise, but seek Virtue that leads to it. 116. And yet no more lessen or dissemble thy Merit, than over-rate it: For tho' Humility be a Virtue, an affected one is none. OF CONDUCT IN SPEECH 117. Enquire often, but Judge rarely, and thou wilt not often be mistaken. 118. It is safer to Learn, than teach; and who conceals his Opinion, has nothing to Ansv^^er for. 119. Vanity or Resentment often engage us, and 't is two to one but we come off Losers; for one shews a Want of Judgment and Humility, as the other does of Temper and Discretion. 120. Not that I admire the Reserved; for they are next to Unnatural that are not Communicable. But if Reserved- ness be at any Time a Virtue, 't is in Throngs or ill Company. 121. Beware also of Affectation in Speech; it often wrongs Matter, and ever shows a blind Side. 122 Speak properly, and in as few Words as you can, but always plainly; for the End of Speech is not Ostenta- tion, but to be understood. 123. They that affect Words more than Matter, will dry up that little they have. 124. Sense never fails to give them that have it, Words enough to make them understood. 125. But it too often happens in some Conversations, as in Apothecary-Shops, that those Pots that are Empty, or have Things of Small Value in them, are as gaudily Dress'd and Flourish'd, as those that are full of precious Drugs. 126. This Laboring of slight Matter with flourish'd Turna 402 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE of Expression, is fulsome, and worse than the Modern Imita- tion of Tapestry, and East-India Goods, in Stuffs anc Linnens. In short, 't is but Taudry Talk, and next to ver^ Trash. UNION OF FRIENDS ( 127. They that love beyond the World, cannot be sepa- rated by it. 128. Death cannot kill, what never dies. 129. Nor can Spirits ever be divided that love and live in the same Divine Principle; the Root and Record of their Friendship. 130. If Absence be not death, neither is theirs. 131. Death is but Crossing the World, as Friends do the Seas ; They live in one another still. 132. For they must needs be present, that love and live in that which is Omnipresent. 133. In this Divine Glass, they see Face to Face ; and their Converse is Free, as well as Pure. 134. This is the Comfort of Friends, that though they may be said to Die, yet their Friendship and Society are, in the best Sense, ever present, because Immortal. OF BEING EASY IN LIVING 135. 'T is a Happiness to be delivered from a Curious Mind, as well as from a Dainty Palate. 136. For it is not only a Troublesome but Slavish Thing to be Nice. 137. They narrow their own Freedom and Comforts, that make so much requisite to enjoy them. 138. To be Easy in Living, is much of the Pleasure of Life : But Difficult Tempers will always want it. 139. A Careless and Homely Breeding is therefore prefer- able to one Nice and Delicate. 140. And he that is taught to live upon a little, owes more to his Father's Wisdom, than he that has a great deal left him, does to his Father's Care. 141. Children can't well be too hardly Bred: For besides that it fits them to bear the Roughest Providences, it is more Masculine, Active and Healthy. MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 403 142. Nay, 't is certain, that Liberty of the Mind is mightily preserved hy it : For so 't is served, instead of being a Servant, indeed a Slave to sensual Delicacies. 143. As Nature is soon answered, so are such satisfied. 144. The Memory of the Ancients is hardly in any Thing more to be celebrated, than in a Strict and Useful Institution of Youth. 145. By Labor they prevented Luxury in their young Peo- ple, till Wisdom and Philosophy had taught them to Resist and Despise it. 146. It must be therefore a gross Fault to strive so hard for the Pleasure of our Bodies, and be so insensible and careless of the Freedom of our Souls. OF MAN S INCONSIDERATENESS AND PARTIALITY 147. 'T is very observable, if our Civil Rights are invaded or incroach'd upon, we are mightily touch'd, and fill every Place with our Resentment and Complaint; while we suffer our selves, our Better and Nobler Selves, to be the Property and Vassals of Sin, the worst of Invaders. 148. In vain do we expect to be delivered from such Troubles, till we are delivered from the Cause of them, our Disobedience to God. 149. When he has his Dues from us, it will be time enough for Him to give us ours out of one another. 150. 'T is our great Happiness, if we could understand it, that we meet with such Checks in the Career of our worldly Enjoyments, lest we should Forget the Giver, adore the Gift, and terminate our Felicity here, which is not Man's ultimate Bliss. 151. Our Losses are often made Judgments by our Guilt, and Mercies by our Repentance. 152. Besides, it argues great Folly in Men to let their Satisfaction exceed the true Value of any Temporal Matter : For Disappointments are not always to be measured by the Loss of the Thing, but the Over-value we put upon it. 153. And thus Men improve their own Miseries, for want of an Equal and Just Estimate of what they Enjoy or Lose. 154. There lies a Proviso upon every Thing in this World. 404 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE and we must observe it at our own Peril, viz. To Ibve God above all, and Act for Judgment, the Last I mean. OF THE RULE OF JUDGING 155. In all Things Reason should prevail: 'T is quite an- other Thing to be stiff than steady in an Opinion. 156. This May be Reasonable, but that is ever Wilful. 157. In such Cases it always happens, that the clearer the Argument, the greater the Obstinacy, where the Design is not to be convinced. 158. This is to value Humor more than Truth, and prefer a sullen Pride to a reasonable Submission. 159. 'T is the Glory of a Man to vail to Truth; as it is the Mark of a good Nature to be Easily entreated. 160. Beasts Act by Sense, Man should by Reason; else he is a greater Beast than ever God made: And the Proverb is verified, The Corruption of the best Things is the worst and most offensive. 161. A reasonable Opinion must ever be in Danger, where Reason is not Judge. 162. Though there is a Regard due to Education, and the Tradition of our Fathers, Truth will ever deserve, as well as claim the Preference. 163. If like Theophilus and Timothy, we have been brought up in the Knowledge of the best Things, 't is our Ad- vantage : But neither they nor we lose by trying their Truth ; for so we learn their, as well as its intrinsick Worth. 164. Truth never lost Ground by Enquiry, because she is most of all Reasonable. 165. Nor can that need another Authority, that is Self- evident. 166. If my own Reason be on the Side of a Principle, with what can I Dispute or withstand it? 167. And if Men would once consider one another reason- ably, they would either reconcile their Differences, or more Amicably maintain them. 16S. Let That therefore be the Standard, that has most to say for itself; The' of that let every Man be Judge for himself e MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 405 169. Reason, like the Sun, is Common to All; And *t is for want of examining all by the same Light and Measure, that we are not all of the same Mind : For all have it to that End, though all do not use it So. OF FORMALITY 170. Form is Good, but not Formality. 171. In the Use of the best of Forms there is too much of that I fear. 172. 'T is absolutely necessary, that this Distinction should go along with People in their Devotion; for too many are apter to rest upon What they do, than How they do their Duty. 173. If it were considered, that it is the Frame of the Mind that gives our Performances Acceptance, we would lay m.ore Stress on our Inward Preparation than our Out- ward Action. OF THE MEAN NOTION WE HAVE OF GOD 174. Nothing more shews the low Condition Man is fallen into, than the unsuitable Notion we must have of God, by the Ways we take to please him. 175. As if it availed any Thing to him that we performed so many Ceremonies and external Forms of Devotion, who never meant more by them, than to try our Obedience, and, through them, to shew us something more Excellent and Durable beyond them. 176. Doing, while we are Undoing, is good for nothing. 177. Of what Benefit is it to say our Prayers regularly, go to Church, receive the Sacraments, and may be go to Con- fessions too; ay. Feast the Priest, and give Alms to the Poor, and yet Lye, Swear, Curse, be Drunk, Covetous, Unclean, Proud, Revengeful, Vain and Idle at the same Time ? 178. Can one excuse or ballance the other? Or v/ill God think himself well served, where his Law is Violated? Or well used, where there is so much more Shew tjian Sub- stance ? 406 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 179. 'T is a most dangerous Error for a Man to think to excuse himself in the Breach of a Moral Duty, by a Formal Performance of Positive Worship ; and less when of Human Invention. 180. Our Blessed Saviour most rightly and clearly dis- tinguished and determined this Case, when he told the Jews, that they were his Mother, his Brethren and Sisters, who did the Will of his Father. OF THE BENEFIT OF JUSTICE 181. Justice is a great Support of Society, because an Insurance to all Men of their Property: This violated, there 's no Security, which throws all into Confusion to recover it. 182. An Honest Man is a fast Pledge in Dealing. A Man is Sure to have it if it be to be had. 183. Many are so, merely of Necessity: Others not so only for the same Reason: But such an honest Man is not to be thanked, and such a dishonest Man is to be pity'd. 184. But he that is dishonest for Gain, is next to a Robber, and to be punish'd for Example. 185. And indeed there are few Dealers^ but what are Faulty, which m.akes Trade Difficult, and a great Temptation to Men of Virtue. 186. 'T is not what they should, but what they can get: Faults or Decays must be concealed : Big Words given, where they are not deserved, and the Ignorance or Necessity of the Buyer im.posed upon for unjust Profit. 187. These are the Men that keep their Words for their own Ends, and are only Just for Fear of the Mag- istrate. 188. A Politick rather than a Moral Honesty; a con- strained, not a chosen Justice: According to the Proverb, Patience per Force, and thank you for nothing. 189. But of all Justice, that is the greatest, that passes tinder the Name of Law. A Cut-Purse in Westmin- ster-Hall exceeds; for that advances Injustice to Op- pression, where Law is alledged for that which it should punish. MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 407 OF JEALOUSY 190. The Jealous are Troublesome to others, but a Tor- ment to themselves. 191. Jealousy is a kind of Civil War in the Soul, where Judgment and Imagination are at perpetual Jars. 192. This Civil Dissension in the Mind, like that of the Body Politick, commits great Disorders, and lays all waste. 193. Nothing stands safe in its Way: Nature, Interest, Religion, must Yield to its Fury. 194 It violates Contracts, Dissolves Society, Breaks Wed- lock, Betrays Friends and Neighbors. No Body is Good, and every one is either doing or designing them a Mischief. 195. It has a Venome that more or less rankles wherever it bites: And as it reports Fancies for Facts, so it disturbs its own House as often as other Folks. 196. Its Rise is Guilt or 111 Nature, and by Reflection thinks its own Faults to be other Men's ; as he that 's over- run with the Jaundice takes others to be Yellow. 197. A Jealous Man only sees his own Spectrum, when he looks upon other Men, and gives his Character in theirs. OF STATE 198. I love Service, but not State ; One is Useful, the other is Superfluous. 199. The Trouble of this, as well as Charge, is Real; but the Advantage only Imaginary. 200. Besides, it helps to set us up above our selves, and Augments our Temptation to Disorder. 201. The Least Thing out of Joint, or omitted, make us uneasy: and we are ready to think our selves ill served, about that which is of no real Service at all: Or so much better than other Men, as we have the Means of greater State. 202. But this is all for want of Wisdom, which carries the truest and most forceable State along with it. 203. He that makes not himself Cheap by indiscreet Con- versation, puts Value enough upon himself every where, 204. The other is rather Pageantry than State, 408 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE OF A GOOD SERVANT 205. A True, and a Good Servant, are the same Thing. 206. But no Servant is True to his Master, that Defrauds him. 207. Now there are many Ways of Defrauding a Master, as, of Time, Care, Pains,Respect, and Reputation, as well as Money. 208. He that Neglects his Work, Robs his Master, since he is Fed and Paid as ii he did his Best; and he that is not as Diligent in the Absence, as in the Presence of his Master, cannot be a true Servant. 209. Nor is he a true Servant, that buys dear to share in the Profit with the Seller. 210. Nor yet he that tells Tales without Doors; or deals basely in his Master's Name with other People ; or Connives at others Loyterings, Wasteings, or dishonorable Reflections. 211. So that a true Servant is Diligent, Secret, and Re- spectful: More Tender of his Master's Honor and Interest, than of his own Profit. 212. Such a Servant deserves well, and if Modest under his Merit, should liberally feel it at his Master's Hand. OF AN IMMEDIATE PURSUIT OF THE WORLD 213. It shews a Depraved State of Mind, to Cark and Care for that which one does not need. 214. Some are as eager to be Rich, as ever they were to Live: For Superfluity, as for Subsistance. 215. But that Plenty should augment Covetousness, is a Pes'version of Providence; and yet the Generality are the worse for their Riches. 216. But it is strange, that Old Men should excel : For gen- erally Money lies nearest them that are nearest their Graves ; As if they would augment their Love in Proportion to the little Time they have left to enjoy it: And yet their Pleasure is without Enjoyment, since none enjOy what they do not use. 217. So that instead of learning to leave their greath Wealth easily, they hold the Faster, because they must leave it: So Sordid is the Temper of some Men. 218. Where Charity keeps Pace with Gain, Industry is MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 409 blessed: But to slave to get, and keep it Sordidly, is a Sin against Providence, a Vice in Government, and an Injury to their Neighbors. 219. Such are they as spend not one Fifth of their In- come, and, it may be, give not one Tenth of what they spend to the Needy. 220. This is the worst Sort of Idolatry, because there can be no Religion in it, nor Ignorance pleaded in Excuse of it ; and that it wrongs other Folks that ought to have a Share therein. OF THE INTEREST OF THE PUBLICK IN OUR ESTATES 221. Hardly any Thing is given us for our Selves, but the Publick may claim a Share with us. But of all we call ours, we are most accountable to God and the Publick for our Es- tates: In this we are but Stewards, and to Hord up all to ourselves is great Injustice as well as Ingratitude. 222. If all Men were so far Tenants to the Publick, that the Superfluities of Gain and Expence were applied to the Exigencies thereof, it would put an End to Taxes, leave never a Beggar, and make the greatest Bank for National Trade in Europe. 223. It is a Judgment upon us, as well as Weakness, tho' we wont't see it, to begin at the wrong End. 224. If the Taxes we give are not to maintain Pride, I am sure there would be less, if Pride were made a Tax to the Government. 225. I confess I have wondered that so many Lawful and Useful Things are excised by Laws, and Pride left to Reign Free over them and the Publick. 226. But since People are more afraid of the Laws of Man than of God, because their Punishment seems to be nearest : I know not how magistrates can be excused in their suffering such Excess with Impunity. 227. Our Noble English Patriarchs as well as Patriots, were so sensible of this Evil, that they made several ex- cellent Laws, commonly called Sumptuary, to Forbid, at least Limit the Pride of the People ; which because the Exe- cution of them would be our Interest and Honor, their Neglect must be our just Reproach and Loss. 410 .SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 228. T is but Reasonable that the Punishment of Pride and Excess should help to support the Government, since it must otherwise inevitably be ruined by them. 229. But som^e say, It ruins Trade, and will make the Poor Burthensorne to the Publick; But if such Trade in Conse- quence ruins the Kingdom, is it not Time to ruin that Trade? Is Moderation no Part of our Duty, and Temper- ance an Enem.y to Government? 230. He is a Judas that will get Money by any Thing. 231. To wink at a Trade that effeminates the People, and invades the Ancient Discipline of the Kingdom, is a Crime Capital, and to be severely punish'd instead of being excused by the Magistrate. 232. Is there no better Employment for the Poor than Luxury ? Miserable Nation ! 233. What did they before they fell into these forbidden Methods ? Is there not Land enough in England to Culti- vate, and more and better Manufactures to be Made? 234. Have we no Room for them in our Plantations, about Things that may augment Trade, without Luxury ? 235. In short, let Pride pay, and Excess be well Excised: And if that will Cure the People, it will help to Keep the Kingdom. THE VAIN MAN 236. But a Vain Man is a Nauseous Creature: He is so full of himself that he has no Room for any Thing else, be it never so Good or Deserving. 237. 'T is I at every turn that does this, or can do that. A.nd as he abounds in his Comparisons, so he is sure to give himiself the better of every Body else; according to the Proverb, All his Geese are Swans. 238. They are certainly to be pity'd that can be so much mistaken at Home. 239. And yet I have somictimes thought that such People are in a sort Happy, that nothing can put out of Countenance with themselves, though they neither have nor merit other Peoples. 240. But at the same Time one would wonder they should not feel the Blows they give themselves, or get from others, for this intolerable and ridiculous Temper 5 nor shew any MOUE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 411 Concern at that which makes others blush for, as well as at them, (viz.) their unreasonable Assurance. 241. To be a Man's own Fool is bad enough, but the Vain Man is Every Body's. 242. This silly Disposition comes of a Mixture of Igno- rance, Confidence, and Pride ; and as there is more or less of the last, so it is more or less offensive or Entertaining. 243. And yet perhaps the worst Part of this Vanity is it's Unteachableness. Tell it any Thing, and it has known it long ago ; and out-runs Information and Instruction, or else proudly pufts at it. 244. Whereas the greatest Understandings doubt most, are readiest to learn, and least pleas'd with themselves ; this, with no Body else. 245. For tho' they stand on higher Ground, and so see farther than their Neighbors, they are yet humbled by their Prospect, since it shews them something, so much higher and above their Reach. 246. And truly then it is, that Sense shines with the great- est Beauty when it is set in Humility. 247. An humble able Man is a Jewel worth a Kingdom: It is often saved by him, as Solomon's Poor Wise Man did the City. 248. May we have more of them, or less Need of them* THE CONFORMIST 249. It is reasonable to concur where Conscience does not forbid a Compliance; for Conformity is at least a Civil Virtue. 250. But we should only press it in Necessaries, the rest may prove a Snare and Temptation to break Society. 251. But above all, it is a Weakness in Religion and Gov- ernment, where it is carried to Things of an Indifferent Nature, since besides that it makes Way for Scruples, Lib- erty is always the Price of it. 252. Such Conformists have little to boast of, and there- fore the less Reason to Reproach others that have more Latitude. 253. And ytt the Latitudinarian that I love, is one that is 412 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE only so in Charity; for the Freedom I recommend is no Scepticism in Judgment, and much less so in Practice. THE OBLIGATIONS OF GREAT MEN TO ALMIGHTY GOD 254. It seems but reasonable, that those whom God has Distinguish'd from others; by his Goodness, should dis- tinguish themselves to him by their Gratitude. 255. For tho' he has made of One Blood all Nations, he has not rang'd or dignified them upon the Level, but in a sort of Subordination and Dependency. 256. If we look upwards, we find it in the Heavens, where the Planets have their several Degrees of Glory, and so the other Stars of Magnitude and Lustre. 257. If we look upon the Earth, we see it among the Trees of the Wood, from the Cedar to the Bramble; in the Waters among the Fish, from the Leviathan to the Sprat; in the Air among the Birds, from the Eagle to the Sparrow; among the Beasts, from the Lyon to the Cat; and among Mankind it self, from the King to the Scavenger. 258. Our Great Men, doubtless, were designed by the Wise Framer of the World for our Religious, Moral and Politick Planets; for Lights and Directions to the lower Ra»ks of the numerous Company of their own Kind, both in Precepts and Examples; and they are well paid for their Pains too, who have the Honor and Service of their fellow Creatures, and the Marrow and Fat of the Earth for their Share. 259. But is it not a most unaccountable Folly, that Men should be Proud of the Providences that should Humble them? Or think the Better of themselves, instead of Him that raised them so much above the Level; or in being so in their Lives, in Return of his Extraordinary Favors. 260. But it is but too near a-kin to us, to think no further than our selves, either in the Acquisition, or Use of our Wealth and Greatness ; when, alas, they are the Preferments of Heaven, to try our Wisdom, Bounty and Gratitude. 261. 'T is a dangerous Perversion of the End of Provi- dence to Consume the Time, Power and Wealth he has given us above other Men, to gratify our Sordid Passions, MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 413 instead of playing the good Stewards, to the Honor of our great Benefactor, and the Good of our Fellow-Creatures. 262. But it is an Injustice too; since those Higher Ranks of Men are but the Trustees of Heaven for the Benefit of lesser Mortals, who, as Minors, are intituled to all their Care ^nd Provision. 263. For though God has dignified some Men above their Brethren, it never was to serve their Pleasures, but that they might take Pleasure to serve the PubHck. 264. For this Cause doubtless it was, that they were raised above Necessity or any Trouble to Live, that they might have more Time and Ability to Care for Others : And 't is certain, where that Use is not made of the Bounties of Providence, they are Imbezzell'd and Wasted. 265. It has often struck me with a serious Reflection, when I have observed the great Inequality of the World ; that one Man should have such Numbers of his fellow Creatures to Wait upon him, who have Souls to be saved as well as he'; and this not for Business, but State. Certainly a poor Em- ployment of his Money, and a worse of their Time. 266. But that any one Man should make Work for so many ; or rather keep them from Work, to make up a Train, has a Levity and Luxury in it very reprovable, both in Re- ligion and Government. 267. But even in allowable Services it has an humbling Consideration, and what should raise the Thankfulness of the Great Men to him that has so m^uch better'd their Cir- cumstances, and Moderated the Use of their Dominion over those of their own Kind. 268. When the poor Indians hear us call any of our Family by the Name of Servants, they cry out. What, call Brethren Servants ! We call our Dogs Servants, but never Men. The Moral certainly can do us no Harm, but may Instruct us to abate our Height, and narrow our State and Attendance, 269. And what has been said of their Excess, may in some measure be apply'd to other Branches of Luxury, that set ill Examples to the lesser World, and Rob the Needy of their Pensions. 270. GOD Almighty Touch the Hearts of our Grandees with a Sense of his Distinguish'd Goodness, and that true 414 SOME FRUITS OF SOLITUDE End of it; that they may better distinguish themselves in their Conduct, to the Glory of Him that has thus liberally Preferred them, and the Benefit of their fellow Creatures. OF REFINING UPON OTHER MEN^S ACTIONS OR INTERESTS 271. This seems to be the Master-Piece of our Politicians; But no Body shoots more at Random, than those Refiners. 2^2. A perfect Lottery, and meer Hap-Hazard. Since the true Spring of the Actions of Men is as Invisible as their Hearts; and so are their Thoughts too of their several Interests. 273. Pie that judges of other Men by himself, does not always hit the Mark, because all Men have not the same Capacity, nor Passions in Interest. 274. If an able Man refines upon the Proceedings of an ordinary Capacity, according to his own, he must ever miss it: But much more the ordinary Man, when he shall pretend to speculate the Motives to the able Man's Actions: For the Able Man deceives himself by making t'other wiser than he is in the Reason of his Conduct; and the ordinary Man makes himself so, in presuming to judge of the Reasons of the Abler Man's Actions. 275. 'T is in short a Wood, a Maze, and of nothing are we more uncertain, nor in anything do we of tener befool ourselves. 276. The Mischiefs are many that follow this Humor, and dangerous : For Men Misguide themselves, act upon false Meas- ures, and meet frequently with mischievous Disappointments, 277. It excludes all Confidence in Commerce; allows of no such Thing as a Principle in Practice ; supposes every Man to act upon other Reasons than what appears, and that there is no such Thing as a Straightness or Sincerity among Man- kind: A Trick instead of Truth. 278. Neither, allowing Nature or Religion; but some Worldly Fetch or Advantage: The true, the hidden Motive to all Men to act or do. 279. 'T is hard to express its Uncharitableness, as well as Uncertainty ; and has more of Vanity than Benefit in it. 280. This Foolish Quality gives a large Field, but let what I have said serve for this Time. MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 415 OF CHARITY 281. Charity has various Senses, but is Excellent in all of them. 282. It imports ; first, the Commiseration of the Poor, and Unhappy of Mankind, and extends an Helping-Hand to mend their Condition. 283. They that feel nothing of this, are at best not above half of Kin to Human Race ; since they must have no Bov/els, which makes such an Essential Part thereof, who have no more Nature. 284. A Man, and yet not have the Feeling of the Wants or Needs of his own Flesh and Blood ! A Monster rather ! And may he never be suffered to propagate such an unnatural Stock in the World. 285. Such an Uncharitableness spoils the best Gains, and two to one but it entails a Curse upon the Possessors. 286. Nor can we expect to be heard of God in our Prayers, that turn the deaf Ear to the Petitions of the Dis- tressed amongst our fellow Creatures. 287. God sends the Poor to try us, as well as he tries them by being such : And he that refuses them a little out of the great deal that God has given him, Lays up Poverty in Store for his own Posterity. 288. I will not say these Works are Meritorious, but dare say they are Acceptable, and go not without their Reward: Tho' to Humble us in our Fulness and Liberality too, we only Give but what is given us to Give as well as use; for if we are not our own, less is that so which God has in- trusted us w^ith. 289. Next, Charity makes the best Construction of Things and Persons, and is so far from being an evil Spy, a Back- biter, or a Detractor, that it excuses Weakness, extenuates Miscarriages, makes the best of every Thing ; forgives every Body, serves All, and hopes to the End. 290. It moderates Extreams, is always for Expediences, labors to accommodate Differences, and had rather suffer than Revenge: And so far from Exacting the utmost Farthing, that it had rather lose than seek her Own Violently. 416 MORE FRUITS OF SOLITUDE 291. As it acts Freely, so, Zealously too; but 't is always to do Good, for it hurts no Body. 292. An Universal Remedy against Discord, and an Holy Cement for Mankind. 293. And lastly, 'T is Love to God and the Brethren, which raises the Soul above all worldly Considerations ; and, as it gives a Taste of Heaven upon Earth, so 't is Heaven in the Fulness of it hereafter to the truly Charitable here. 294. This is the Noblest Sense Charity has, after which all should press, as that more Excellent Way. 295. Nay, most Excellent; for as Faith, Hope and Charity were the more Excellent Way that Great Apostle discovered to the Christians, (too apt to stick in Outward Gifts and Church Performances) so of that better Way he preferred Charity as the best Part, because it would out-last the rest, and abide for ever. 296. Wherefore a Man can never be a true and good Christian without Charity, even in the lowest Sense of it: 'And yet he may have that Part thereof, and still be none of the Apostle's true Christian, since he tells us. That tho' we should give all our Goods to the Poor, and want Charity (in her other and higher Senses) it would profit us nothing. 297. Nay, tho' we had All Tongues, All Knowledge, and even Gifts of Prophesy, and were Preachers to others; ay, and had Zeal enough to give our Bodies to be burned, yet if we wanted Charity, it would not avail us for Salvation. 298. It seems it was his (and indeed ought to be our) Umim Necessarium, or the One Thing Needful, which our Saviour attributed to Mary in Preference to her Sister Martha, that seems not to have wanted the lesser Parts of Charity. 299. Would God this Divine Virtue were more implanted and diffused among Mankind, the Pretenders to Christianity especially, and we should certainly mind Piety more than Controversy, and Exercise Love and Compassion instead of Censuring and Persecuting one another in any Manner: whatsoever. END OF PART II 1*5 BOSTON COLLEGE 3 9031 026 12437 0 r